Quotations.ch
  Directory : The Scarlet Letter
GUIDE SUPPORT US BLOG
  • The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Scarlet Letter, by Nathaniel Hawthorne
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
  • Title: The Scarlet Letter
  • Author: Nathaniel Hawthorne
  • Illustrator: Mary Hallock Foote
  • L. S. Ipsen
  • Release Date: May 5, 2008 [EBook #25344]
  • Language: English
  • Character set encoding: UTF-8
  • *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE SCARLET LETTER ***
  • Produced by Markus Brenner, Irma Spehar and the Online
  • Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
  • file was produced from images generously made available
  • by The Internet Archive/American Libraries.)
  • THE SCARLET LETTER.
  • BY
  • NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE.
  • Illustrated.
  • [Illustration]
  • BOSTON:
  • JAMES R. OSGOOD AND COMPANY,
  • LATE TICKNOR & FIELDS, AND FIELDS, OSGOOD, & CO.
  • 1878.
  • COPYRIGHT, 1850 AND 1877.
  • BY NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE AND JAMES R. OSGOOD & CO.
  • _All rights reserved._
  • October 22, 1874.
  • [Illustration]
  • [Illustration]
  • PREFACE TO THE SECOND EDITION.
  • Much to the author's surprise, and (if he may say so without
  • additional offence) considerably to his amusement, he finds that his
  • sketch of official life, introductory to THE SCARLET LETTER, has
  • created an unprecedented excitement in the respectable community
  • immediately around him. It could hardly have been more violent,
  • indeed, had he burned down the Custom-House, and quenched its last
  • smoking ember in the blood of a certain venerable personage, against
  • whom he is supposed to cherish a peculiar malevolence. As the public
  • disapprobation would weigh very heavily on him, were he conscious of
  • deserving it, the author begs leave to say, that he has carefully read
  • over the introductory pages, with a purpose to alter or expunge
  • whatever might be found amiss, and to make the best reparation in his
  • power for the atrocities of which he has been adjudged guilty. But it
  • appears to him, that the only remarkable features of the sketch are
  • its frank and genuine good-humor, and the general accuracy with which
  • he has conveyed his sincere impressions of the characters therein
  • described. As to enmity, or ill-feeling of any kind, personal or
  • political, he utterly disclaims such motives. The sketch might,
  • perhaps, have been wholly omitted, without loss to the public, or
  • detriment to the book; but, having undertaken to write it, he
  • conceives that it could not have been done in a better or a kindlier
  • spirit, nor, so far as his abilities availed, with a livelier effect
  • of truth.
  • The author is constrained, therefore, to republish his introductory
  • sketch without the change of a word.
  • SALEM, March 30, 1850.
  • [Illustration]
  • CONTENTS.
  • PAGE
  • THE CUSTOM HOUSE.—INTRODUCTORY 1
  • THE SCARLET LETTER.
  • I. THE PRISON-DOOR 51
  • II. THE MARKET-PLACE 54
  • III. THE RECOGNITION 68
  • IV. THE INTERVIEW 80
  • V. HESTER AT HER NEEDLE 90
  • VI. PEARL 104
  • VII. THE GOVERNOR'S HALL 118
  • VIII. THE ELF-CHILD AND THE MINISTER 129
  • IX. THE LEECH 142
  • X. THE LEECH AND HIS PATIENT 155
  • XI. THE INTERIOR OF A HEART 168
  • XII. THE MINISTER'S VIGIL 177
  • XIII. ANOTHER VIEW OF HESTER 193
  • XIV. HESTER AND THE PHYSICIAN 204
  • XV. HESTER AND PEARL 212
  • XVI. A FOREST WALK 223
  • XVII. THE PASTOR AND HIS PARISHIONER 231
  • XVIII. A FLOOD OF SUNSHINE 245
  • XIX. THE CHILD AT THE BROOK-SIDE 253
  • XX. THE MINISTER IN A MAZE 264
  • XXI. THE NEW ENGLAND HOLIDAY 277
  • XXII. THE PROCESSION 288
  • XXIII. THE REVELATION OF THE SCARLET LETTER 302
  • XXIV. CONCLUSION 315
  • [Illustration]
  • LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS.
  • _Drawn by_ MARY HALLOCK FOOTE _and Engraved by_ A. V. S. ANTHONY. _The
  • ornamental head-pieces are by_ L. S. IPSEN.
  • PAGE
  • THE CUSTOM-HOUSE 1
  • THE PRISON DOOR 49
  • VIGNETTE,—WILD ROSE 51
  • THE GOSSIPS 57
  • “STANDING ON THE MISERABLE EMINENCE” 65
  • “SHE WAS LED BACK TO PRISON” 78
  • “THE EYES OF THE WRINKLED SCHOLAR GLOWED” 87
  • THE LONESOME DWELLING 93
  • LONELY FOOTSTEPS 99
  • VIGNETTE 104
  • A TOUCH OF PEARL'S BABY-HAND 113
  • VIGNETTE 118
  • THE GOVERNOR'S BREASTPLATE 125
  • “LOOK THOU TO IT! I WILL NOT LOSE THE CHILD!” 135
  • THE MINISTER AND LEECH 148
  • THE LEECH AND HIS PATIENT 165
  • THE VIRGINS OF THE CHURCH 172
  • “THEY STOOD IN THE NOON OF THAT STRANGE SPLENDOR” 185
  • HESTER IN THE HOUSE OF MOURNING 195
  • MANDRAKE 211
  • “HE GATHERED HERBS HERE AND THERE” 213
  • PEARL ON THE SEA-SHORE 217
  • “WILT THOU YET FORGIVE ME?” 237
  • A GLEAM OF SUNSHINE 249
  • THE CHILD AT THE BROOK-SIDE 257
  • CHILLINGWORTH,—“SMILE WITH A SINISTER MEANING” 287
  • NEW ENGLAND WORTHIES 289
  • “SHALL WE NOT MEET AGAIN?” 311
  • HESTER'S RETURN 320
  • THE CUSTOM-HOUSE.
  • [Illustration: The Custom-House]
  • THE CUSTOM-HOUSE.
  • INTRODUCTORY TO “THE SCARLET LETTER.”
  • It is a little remarkable, that—though disinclined to talk overmuch
  • of myself and my affairs at the fireside, and to my personal
  • friends—an autobiographical impulse should twice in my life have
  • taken possession of me, in addressing the public. The first time was
  • three or four years since, when I favored the reader—inexcusably, and
  • for no earthly reason, that either the indulgent reader or the
  • intrusive author could imagine—with a description of my way of life
  • in the deep quietude of an Old Manse. And now—because, beyond my
  • deserts, I was happy enough to find a listener or two on the former
  • occasion—I again seize the public by the button, and talk of my three
  • years' experience in a Custom-House. The example of the famous
  • “P. P., Clerk of this Parish,” was never more faithfully followed. The
  • truth seems to be, however, that, when he casts his leaves forth upon
  • the wind, the author addresses, not the many who will fling aside his
  • volume, or never take it up, but the few who will understand him,
  • better than most of his schoolmates or lifemates. Some authors,
  • indeed, do far more than this, and indulge themselves in such
  • confidential depths of revelation as could fittingly be addressed,
  • only and exclusively, to the one heart and mind of perfect sympathy;
  • as if the printed book, thrown at large on the wide world, were
  • certain to find out the divided segment of the writer's own nature,
  • and complete his circle of existence by bringing him into communion
  • with it. It is scarcely decorous, however, to speak all, even where we
  • speak impersonally. But, as thoughts are frozen and utterance
  • benumbed, unless the speaker stand in some true relation with his
  • audience, it may be pardonable to imagine that a friend, a kind and
  • apprehensive, though not the closest friend, is listening to our talk;
  • and then, a native reserve being thawed by this genial consciousness,
  • we may prate of the circumstances that lie around us, and even of
  • ourself, but still keep the inmost Me behind its veil. To this extent,
  • and within these limits, an author, methinks, may be autobiographical,
  • without violating either the reader's rights or his own.
  • It will be seen, likewise, that this Custom-House sketch has a certain
  • propriety, of a kind always recognized in literature, as explaining
  • how a large portion of the following pages came into my possession,
  • and as offering proofs of the authenticity of a narrative therein
  • contained. This, in fact,—a desire to put myself in my true position
  • as editor, or very little more, of the most prolix among the tales
  • that make up my volume,—this, and no other, is my true reason for
  • assuming a personal relation with the public. In accomplishing the
  • main purpose, it has appeared allowable, by a few extra touches, to
  • give a faint representation of a mode of life not heretofore
  • described, together with some of the characters that move in it, among
  • whom the author happened to make one.
  • * * * * *
  • In my native town of Salem, at the head of what, half a century ago,
  • in the days of old King Derby, was a bustling wharf,—but which is now
  • burdened with decayed wooden warehouses, and exhibits few or no
  • symptoms of commercial life; except, perhaps, a bark or brig, half-way
  • down its melancholy length, discharging hides; or, nearer at hand, a
  • Nova Scotia schooner, pitching out her cargo of firewood,—at the
  • head, I say, of this dilapidated wharf, which the tide often
  • overflows, and along which, at the base and in the rear of the row of
  • buildings, the track of many languid years is seen in a border of
  • unthrifty grass,—here, with a view from its front windows adown this
  • not very enlivening prospect, and thence across the harbor, stands a
  • spacious edifice of brick. From the loftiest point of its roof, during
  • precisely three and a half hours of each forenoon, floats or droops,
  • in breeze or calm, the banner of the republic; but with the thirteen
  • stripes turned vertically, instead of horizontally, and thus
  • indicating that a civil, and not a military post of Uncle Sam's
  • government is here established. Its front is ornamented with a portico
  • of half a dozen wooden pillars, supporting a balcony, beneath which a
  • flight of wide granite steps descends towards the street. Over the
  • entrance hovers an enormous specimen of the American eagle, with
  • outspread wings, a shield before her breast, and, if I recollect
  • aright, a bunch of intermingled thunderbolts and barbed arrows in each
  • claw. With the customary infirmity of temper that characterizes this
  • unhappy fowl, she appears, by the fierceness of her beak and eye, and
  • the general truculency of her attitude, to threaten mischief to the
  • inoffensive community; and especially to warn all citizens, careful of
  • their safety, against intruding on the premises which she overshadows
  • with her wings. Nevertheless, vixenly as she looks, many people are
  • seeking, at this very moment, to shelter themselves under the wing of
  • the federal eagle; imagining, I presume, that her bosom has all the
  • softness and snugness of an eider-down pillow. But she has no great
  • tenderness, even in her best of moods, and, sooner or later,—oftener
  • soon than late,—is apt to fling off her nestlings, with a scratch of
  • her claw, a dab of her beak, or a rankling wound from her barbed
  • arrows.
  • The pavement round about the above-described edifice—which we may as
  • well name at once as the Custom-House of the port—has grass enough
  • growing in its chinks to show that it has not, of late days, been worn
  • by any multitudinous resort of business. In some months of the year,
  • however, there often chances a forenoon when affairs move onward with
  • a livelier tread. Such occasions might remind the elderly citizen of
  • that period before the last war with England, when Salem was a port by
  • itself; not scorned, as she is now, by her own merchants and
  • ship-owners, who permit her wharves to crumble to ruin, while their
  • ventures go to swell, needlessly and imperceptibly, the mighty flood
  • of commerce at New York or Boston. On some such morning, when three or
  • four vessels happen to have arrived at once,—usually from Africa or
  • South America,—or to be on the verge of their departure thitherward,
  • there is a sound of frequent feet, passing briskly up and down the
  • granite steps. Here, before his own wife has greeted him, you may
  • greet the sea-flushed shipmaster, just in port, with his vessel's
  • papers under his arm, in a tarnished tin box. Here, too, comes his
  • owner, cheerful or sombre, gracious or in the sulks, accordingly as
  • his scheme of the now accomplished voyage has been realized in
  • merchandise that will readily be turned to gold, or has buried him
  • under a bulk of incommodities, such as nobody will care to rid him of.
  • Here, likewise,—the germ of the wrinkle-browed, grizzly-bearded,
  • care-worn merchant,—we have the smart young clerk, who gets the taste
  • of traffic as a wolf-cub does of blood, and already sends adventures
  • in his master's ships, when he had better be sailing mimic-boats upon
  • a mill-pond. Another figure in the scene is the outward-bound sailor
  • in quest of a protection; or the recently arrived one, pale and
  • feeble, seeking a passport to the hospital. Nor must we forget the
  • captains of the rusty little schooners that bring firewood from the
  • British provinces; a rough-looking set of tarpaulins, without the
  • alertness of the Yankee aspect, but contributing an item of no slight
  • importance to our decaying trade.
  • Cluster all these individuals together, as they sometimes were, with
  • other miscellaneous ones to diversify the group, and, for the time
  • being, it made the Custom-House a stirring scene. More frequently,
  • however, on ascending the steps, you would discern—in the entry, if
  • it were summer time, or in their appropriate rooms, if wintry or
  • inclement weather—a row of venerable figures, sitting in
  • old-fashioned chairs, which were tipped on their hind legs back
  • against the wall. Oftentimes they were asleep, but occasionally might
  • be heard talking together, in voices between speech and a snore, and
  • with that lack of energy that distinguishes the occupants of
  • almshouses, and all other human beings who depend for subsistence on
  • charity, on monopolized labor, or anything else, but their own
  • independent exertions. These old gentlemen—seated, like Matthew, at
  • the receipt of customs, but not very liable to be summoned thence,
  • like him, for apostolic errands—were Custom-House officers.
  • Furthermore, on the left hand as you enter the front door, is a
  • certain room or office, about fifteen feet square, and of a lofty
  • height; with two of its arched windows commanding a view of the
  • aforesaid dilapidated wharf, and the third looking across a narrow
  • lane, and along a portion of Derby Street. All three give glimpses of
  • the shops of grocers, block-makers, slop-sellers, and ship-chandlers;
  • around the doors of which are generally to be seen, laughing and
  • gossiping, clusters of old salts, and such other wharf-rats as haunt
  • the Wapping of a seaport. The room itself is cobwebbed, and dingy with
  • old paint; its floor is strewn with gray sand, in a fashion that has
  • elsewhere fallen into long disuse; and it is easy to conclude, from
  • the general slovenliness of the place, that this is a sanctuary into
  • which womankind, with her tools of magic, the broom and mop, has very
  • infrequent access. In the way of furniture, there is a stove with a
  • voluminous funnel; an old pine desk, with a three-legged stool beside
  • it; two or three wooden-bottom chairs, exceedingly decrepit and
  • infirm; and—not to forget the library—on some shelves, a score or
  • two of volumes of the Acts of Congress, and a bulky Digest of the
  • Revenue Laws. A tin pipe ascends through the ceiling, and forms a
  • medium of vocal communication with other parts of the edifice. And
  • here, some six months ago,—pacing from corner to corner, or lounging
  • on the long-legged stool, with his elbow on the desk, and his eyes
  • wandering up and down the columns of the morning newspaper,—you might
  • have recognized, honored reader, the same individual who welcomed you
  • into his cheery little study, where the sunshine glimmered so
  • pleasantly through the willow branches, on the western side of the Old
  • Manse. But now, should you go thither to seek him, you would inquire
  • in vain for the Locofoco Surveyor. The besom of reform has swept him
  • out of office; and a worthier successor wears his dignity, and pockets
  • his emoluments.
  • This old town of Salem—my native place, though I have dwelt much away
  • from it, both in boyhood and maturer years—possesses, or did possess,
  • a hold on my affections, the force of which I have never realized
  • during my seasons of actual residence here. Indeed, so far as its
  • physical aspect is concerned, with its flat, unvaried surface, covered
  • chiefly with wooden houses, few or none of which pretend to
  • architectural beauty,—its irregularity, which is neither picturesque
  • nor quaint, but only tame,—its long and lazy street, lounging
  • wearisomely through the whole extent of the peninsula, with Gallows
  • Hill and New Guinea at one end, and a view of the almshouse at the
  • other,—such being the features of my native town, it would be quite
  • as reasonable to form a sentimental attachment to a disarranged
  • checker-board. And yet, though invariably happiest elsewhere, there is
  • within me a feeling for old Salem, which, in lack of a better phrase,
  • I must be content to call affection. The sentiment is probably
  • assignable to the deep and aged roots which my family has struck into
  • the soil. It is now nearly two centuries and a quarter since the
  • original Briton, the earliest emigrant of my name, made his appearance
  • in the wild and forest-bordered settlement, which has since become a
  • city. And here his descendants have been born and died, and have
  • mingled their earthy substance with the soil; until no small portion
  • of it must necessarily be akin to the mortal frame wherewith, for a
  • little while, I walk the streets. In part, therefore, the attachment
  • which I speak of is the mere sensuous sympathy of dust for dust. Few
  • of my countrymen can know what it is; nor, as frequent transplantation
  • is perhaps better for the stock, need they consider it desirable to
  • know.
  • But the sentiment has likewise its moral quality. The figure of that
  • first ancestor, invested by family tradition with a dim and dusky
  • grandeur, was present to my boyish imagination, as far back as I can
  • remember. It still haunts me, and induces a sort of home-feeling with
  • the past, which I scarcely claim in reference to the present phase of
  • the town. I seem to have a stronger claim to a residence here on
  • account of this grave, bearded, sable-cloaked and steeple-crowned
  • progenitor,—who came so early, with his Bible and his sword, and
  • trode the unworn street with such a stately port, and made so large a
  • figure, as a man of war and peace,—a stronger claim than for myself,
  • whose name is seldom heard and my face hardly known. He was a soldier,
  • legislator, judge; he was a ruler in the Church; he had all the
  • Puritanic traits, both good and evil. He was likewise a bitter
  • persecutor, as witness the Quakers, who have remembered him in their
  • histories, and relate an incident of his hard severity towards a woman
  • of their sect, which will last longer, it is to be feared, than any
  • record of his better deeds, although these were many. His son, too,
  • inherited the persecuting spirit, and made himself so conspicuous in
  • the martyrdom of the witches, that their blood may fairly be said to
  • have left a stain upon him. So deep a stain, indeed, that his old dry
  • bones, in the Charter Street burial-ground, must still retain it, if
  • they have not crumbled utterly to dust! I know not whether these
  • ancestors of mine bethought themselves to repent, and ask pardon of
  • Heaven for their cruelties; or whether they are now groaning under the
  • heavy consequences of them, in another state of being. At all events,
  • I, the present writer, as their representative, hereby take shame upon
  • myself for their sakes, and pray that any curse incurred by them—as I
  • have heard, and as the dreary and unprosperous condition of the race,
  • for many a long year back, would argue to exist—may be now and
  • henceforth removed.
  • Doubtless, however, either of these stern and black-browed Puritans
  • would have thought it quite a sufficient retribution for his sins,
  • that, after so long a lapse of years, the old trunk of the family
  • tree, with so much venerable moss upon it, should have borne, as its
  • topmost bough, an idler like myself. No aim, that I have ever
  • cherished, would they recognize as laudable; no success of mine—if my
  • life, beyond its domestic scope, had ever been brightened by
  • success—would they deem otherwise than worthless, if not positively
  • disgraceful. “What is he?” murmurs one gray shadow of my forefathers
  • to the other. “A writer of story-books! What kind of a business in
  • life—what mode of glorifying God, or being serviceable to mankind in
  • his day and generation—may that be? Why, the degenerate fellow might
  • as well have been a fiddler!” Such are the compliments bandied between
  • my great-grandsires and myself, across the gulf of time! And yet, let
  • them scorn me as they will, strong traits of their nature have
  • intertwined themselves with mine.
  • Planted deep, in the town's earliest infancy and childhood, by these
  • two earnest and energetic men, the race has ever since subsisted here;
  • always, too, in respectability; never, so far as I have known,
  • disgraced by a single unworthy member; but seldom or never, on the
  • other hand, after the first two generations, performing any memorable
  • deed, or so much as putting forward a claim to public notice.
  • Gradually, they have sunk almost out of sight; as old houses, here and
  • there about the streets, get covered half-way to the eaves by the
  • accumulation of new soil. From father to son, for above a hundred
  • years, they followed the sea; a gray-headed shipmaster, in each
  • generation, retiring from the quarter-deck to the homestead, while a
  • boy of fourteen took the hereditary place before the mast, confronting
  • the salt spray and the gale, which had blustered against his sire and
  • grandsire. The boy, also, in due time, passed from the forecastle to
  • the cabin, spent a tempestuous manhood, and returned from his
  • world-wanderings, to grow old, and die, and mingle his dust with the
  • natal earth. This long connection of a family with one spot, as its
  • place of birth and burial, creates a kindred between the human being
  • and the locality, quite independent of any charm in the scenery or
  • moral circumstances that surround him. It is not love, but instinct.
  • The new inhabitant—who came himself from a foreign land, or whose
  • father or grandfather came—has little claim to be called a Salemite;
  • he has no conception of the oyster-like tenacity with which an old
  • settler, over whom his third century is creeping, clings to the spot
  • where his successive generations have been imbedded. It is no matter
  • that the place is joyless for him; that he is weary of the old wooden
  • houses, the mud and dust, the dead level of site and sentiment, the
  • chill east wind, and the chillest of social atmospheres;—all these,
  • and whatever faults besides he may see or imagine, are nothing to the
  • purpose. The spell survives, and just as powerfully as if the natal
  • spot were an earthly paradise. So has it been in my case. I felt it
  • almost as a destiny to make Salem my home; so that the mould of
  • features and cast of character which had all along been familiar
  • here,—ever, as one representative of the race lay down in his grave,
  • another assuming, as it were, his sentry-march along the main
  • street,—might still in my little day be seen and recognized in the
  • old town. Nevertheless, this very sentiment is an evidence that the
  • connection, which has become an unhealthy one, should at last be
  • severed. Human nature will not flourish, any more than a potato, if it
  • be planted and replanted, for too long a series of generations, in the
  • same worn-out soil. My children have had other birthplaces, and, so
  • far as their fortunes may be within my control, shall strike their
  • roots into unaccustomed earth.
  • On emerging from the Old Manse, it was chiefly this strange, indolent,
  • unjoyous attachment for my native town, that brought me to fill a
  • place in Uncle Sam's brick edifice, when I might as well, or better,
  • have gone somewhere else. My doom was on me. It was not the first
  • time, nor the second, that I had gone away,—as it seemed,
  • permanently,—but yet returned, like the bad half-penny; or as if
  • Salem were for me the inevitable centre of the universe. So, one fine
  • morning, I ascended the flight of granite steps, with the President's
  • commission in my pocket, and was introduced to the corps of gentlemen
  • who were to aid me in my weighty responsibility, as chief executive
  • officer of the Custom-House.
  • I doubt greatly—or, rather, I do not doubt at all—whether any public
  • functionary of the United States, either in the civil or military
  • line, has ever had such a patriarchal body of veterans under his
  • orders as myself. The whereabouts of the Oldest Inhabitant was at once
  • settled, when I looked at them. For upwards of twenty years before
  • this epoch, the independent position of the Collector had kept the
  • Salem Custom-House out of the whirlpool of political vicissitude,
  • which makes the tenure of office generally so fragile. A soldier,—New
  • England's most distinguished soldier,—he stood firmly on the pedestal
  • of his gallant services; and, himself secure in the wise liberality of
  • the successive administrations through which he had held office, he
  • had been the safety of his subordinates in many an hour of danger and
  • heart-quake. General Miller was radically conservative; a man over
  • whose kindly nature habit had no slight influence; attaching himself
  • strongly to familiar faces, and with difficulty moved to change, even
  • when change might have brought unquestionable improvement. Thus, on
  • taking charge of my department, I found few but aged men. They were
  • ancient sea-captains, for the most part, who, after being tost on
  • every sea, and standing up sturdily against life's tempestuous blasts,
  • had finally drifted into this quiet nook; where, with little to
  • disturb them, except the periodical terrors of a Presidential
  • election, they one and all acquired a new lease of existence. Though
  • by no means less liable than their fellow-men to age and infirmity,
  • they had evidently some talisman or other that kept death at bay. Two
  • or three of their number, as I was assured, being gouty and rheumatic,
  • or perhaps bedridden, never dreamed of making their appearance at the
  • Custom-House, during a large part of the year; but, after a torpid
  • winter, would creep out into the warm sunshine of May or June, go
  • lazily about what they termed duty, and, at their own leisure and
  • convenience, betake themselves to bed again. I must plead guilty to
  • the charge of abbreviating the official breath of more than one of
  • these venerable servants of the republic. They were allowed, on my
  • representation, to rest from their arduous labors, and soon
  • afterwards—as if their sole principle of life had been zeal for their
  • country's service, as I verily believe it was—withdrew to a better
  • world. It is a pious consolation to me, that, through my interference,
  • a sufficient space was allowed them for repentance of the evil and
  • corrupt practices into which, as a matter of course, every
  • Custom-House officer must be supposed to fall. Neither the front nor
  • the back entrance of the Custom-House opens on the road to Paradise.
  • The greater part of my officers were Whigs. It was well for their
  • venerable brotherhood that the new Surveyor was not a politician, and
  • though a faithful Democrat in principle, neither received nor held his
  • office with any reference to political services. Had it been
  • otherwise,—had an active politician been put into this influential
  • post, to assume the easy task of making head against a Whig Collector,
  • whose infirmities withheld him from the personal administration of his
  • office,—hardly a man of the old corps would have drawn the breath of
  • official life, within a month after the exterminating angel had come
  • up the Custom-House steps. According to the received code in such
  • matters, it would have been nothing short of duty, in a politician, to
  • bring every one of those white heads under the axe of the guillotine.
  • It was plain enough to discern, that the old fellows dreaded some such
  • discourtesy at my hands. It pained, and at the same time amused me, to
  • behold the terrors that attended my advent; to see a furrowed cheek,
  • weather-beaten by half a century of storm, turn ashy pale at the
  • glance of so harmless an individual as myself; to detect, as one or
  • another addressed me, the tremor of a voice, which, in long-past days,
  • had been wont to bellow through a speaking-trumpet, hoarsely enough to
  • frighten Boreas himself to silence. They knew, these excellent old
  • persons, that, by all established rule,—and, as regarded some of
  • them, weighed by their own lack of efficiency for business,—they
  • ought to have given place to younger men, more orthodox in politics,
  • and altogether fitter than themselves to serve our common Uncle. I
  • knew it too, but could never quite find in my heart to act upon the
  • knowledge. Much and deservedly to my own discredit, therefore, and
  • considerably to the detriment of my official conscience, they
  • continued, during my incumbency, to creep about the wharves, and
  • loiter up and down the Custom-House steps. They spent a good deal of
  • time, also, asleep in their accustomed corners, with their chairs
  • tilted back against the wall; awaking, however, once or twice in a
  • forenoon, to bore one another with the several thousandth repetition
  • of old sea-stories, and mouldy jokes, that had grown to be passwords
  • and countersigns among them.
  • The discovery was soon made, I imagine, that the new Surveyor had no
  • great harm in him. So, with lightsome hearts, and the happy
  • consciousness of being usefully employed,—in their own behalf, at
  • least, if not for our beloved country,—these good old gentlemen went
  • through the various formalities of office. Sagaciously, under their
  • spectacles, did they peep into the holds of vessels! Mighty was their
  • fuss about little matters, and marvellous, sometimes, the obtuseness
  • that allowed greater ones to slip between their fingers! Whenever such
  • a mischance occurred,—when a wagon-load of valuable merchandise had
  • been smuggled ashore, at noonday, perhaps, and directly beneath their
  • unsuspicious noses,—nothing could exceed the vigilance and alacrity
  • with which they proceeded to lock, and double-lock, and secure with
  • tape and sealing-wax, all the avenues of the delinquent vessel.
  • Instead of a reprimand for their previous negligence, the case seemed
  • rather to require an eulogium on their praiseworthy caution, after the
  • mischief had happened; a grateful recognition of the promptitude of
  • their zeal, the moment that there was no longer any remedy.
  • Unless people are more than commonly disagreeable, it is my foolish
  • habit to contract a kindness for them. The better part of my
  • companion's character, if it have a better part, is that which usually
  • comes uppermost in my regard, and forms the type whereby I recognize
  • the man. As most of these old Custom-House officers had good traits,
  • and as my position in reference to them, being paternal and
  • protective, was favorable to the growth of friendly sentiments, I soon
  • grew to like them all. It was pleasant, in the summer forenoons,—when
  • the fervent heat, that almost liquefied the rest of the human family,
  • merely communicated a genial warmth to their half-torpid systems,—it
  • was pleasant to hear them chatting in the back entry, a row of them
  • all tipped against the wall, as usual; while the frozen witticisms of
  • past generations were thawed out, and came bubbling with laughter from
  • their lips. Externally, the jollity of aged men has much in common
  • with the mirth of children; the intellect, any more than a deep sense
  • of humor, has little to do with the matter; it is, with both, a gleam
  • that plays upon the surface, and imparts a sunny and cheery aspect
  • alike to the green branch, and gray, mouldering trunk. In one case,
  • however, it is real sunshine; in the other, it more resembles the
  • phosphorescent glow of decaying wood.
  • It would be sad injustice, the reader must understand, to represent
  • all my excellent old friends as in their dotage. In the first place,
  • my coadjutors were not invariably old; there were men among them in
  • their strength and prime, of marked ability and energy, and altogether
  • superior to the sluggish and dependent mode of life on which their
  • evil stars had cast them. Then, moreover, the white locks of age were
  • sometimes found to be the thatch of an intellectual tenement in good
  • repair. But, as respects the majority of my corps of veterans, there
  • will be no wrong done, if I characterize them generally as a set of
  • wearisome old souls, who had gathered nothing worth preservation from
  • their varied experience of life. They seemed to have flung away all
  • the golden grain of practical wisdom, which they had enjoyed so many
  • opportunities of harvesting, and most carefully to have stored their
  • memories with the husks. They spoke with far more interest and unction
  • of their morning's breakfast, or yesterday's, to-day's, or to-morrow's
  • dinner, than of the shipwreck of forty or fifty years ago, and all the
  • world's wonders which they had witnessed with their youthful eyes.
  • The father of the Custom-House—the patriarch, not only of this little
  • squad of officials, but, I am bold to say, of the respectable body of
  • tide-waiters all over the United States—was a certain permanent
  • Inspector. He might truly be termed a legitimate son of the revenue
  • system, dyed in the wool, or, rather, born in the purple; since his
  • sire, a Revolutionary colonel, and formerly collector of the port, had
  • created an office for him, and appointed him to fill it, at a period
  • of the early ages which few living men can now remember. This
  • Inspector, when I first knew him, was a man of fourscore years, or
  • thereabouts, and certainly one of the most wonderful specimens of
  • winter-green that you would be likely to discover in a lifetime's
  • search. With his florid cheek, his compact figure, smartly arrayed in
  • a bright-buttoned blue coat, his brisk and vigorous step, and his hale
  • and hearty aspect, altogether he seemed—not young, indeed—but a kind
  • of new contrivance of Mother Nature in the shape of man, whom age and
  • infirmity had no business to touch. His voice and laugh, which
  • perpetually re-echoed through the Custom-House, had nothing of the
  • tremulous quaver and cackle of an old man's utterance; they came
  • strutting out of his lungs, like the crow of a cock, or the blast of a
  • clarion. Looking at him merely as an animal,—and there was very
  • little else to look at,—he was a most satisfactory object, from the
  • thorough healthfulness and wholesomeness of his system, and his
  • capacity, at that extreme age, to enjoy all, or nearly all, the
  • delights which he had ever aimed at, or conceived of. The careless
  • security of his life in the Custom-House, on a regular income, and
  • with but slight and infrequent apprehensions of removal, had no doubt
  • contributed to make time pass lightly over him. The original and more
  • potent causes, however, lay in the rare perfection of his animal
  • nature, the moderate proportion of intellect, and the very trifling
  • admixture of moral and spiritual ingredients; these latter qualities,
  • indeed, being in barely enough measure to keep the old gentleman from
  • walking on all-fours. He possessed no power of thought, no depth of
  • feeling, no troublesome sensibilities; nothing, in short, but a few
  • commonplace instincts, which, aided by the cheerful temper that grew
  • inevitably out of his physical well-being, did duty very respectably,
  • and to general acceptance, in lieu of a heart. He had been the husband
  • of three wives, all long since dead; the father of twenty children,
  • most of whom, at every age of childhood or maturity, had likewise
  • returned to dust. Here, one would suppose, might have been sorrow
  • enough to imbue the sunniest disposition, through and through, with a
  • sable tinge. Not so with our old Inspector! One brief sigh sufficed to
  • carry off the entire burden of these dismal reminiscences. The next
  • moment, he was as ready for sport as any unbreeched infant; far
  • readier than the Collector's junior clerk, who, at nineteen years, was
  • much the elder and graver man of the two.
  • I used to watch and study this patriarchal personage with, I think,
  • livelier curiosity, than any other form of humanity there presented to
  • my notice. He was, in truth, a rare phenomenon; so perfect, in one
  • point of view; so shallow, so delusive, so impalpable, such an
  • absolute nonentity, in every other. My conclusion was that he had no
  • soul, no heart, no mind; nothing, as I have already said, but
  • instincts: and yet, withal, so cunningly had the few materials of his
  • character been put together, that there was no painful perception of
  • deficiency, but, on my part, an entire contentment with what I found
  • in him. It might be difficult—and it was so—to conceive how he
  • should exist hereafter, so earthly and sensuous did he seem; but
  • surely his existence here, admitting that it was to terminate with his
  • last breath, had been not unkindly given; with no higher moral
  • responsibilities than the beasts of the field, but with a larger scope
  • of enjoyment than theirs, and with all their blessed immunity from the
  • dreariness and duskiness of age.
  • One point, in which he had vastly the advantage over his four-footed
  • brethren, was his ability to recollect the good dinners which it had
  • made no small portion of the happiness of his life to eat. His
  • gourmandism was a highly agreeable trait; and to hear him talk of
  • roast-meat was as appetizing as a pickle or an oyster. As he
  • possessed no higher attribute, and neither sacrificed nor vitiated any
  • spiritual endowment by devoting all his energies and ingenuities to
  • subserve the delight and profit of his maw, it always pleased and
  • satisfied me to hear him expatiate on fish, poultry, and butcher's
  • meat, and the most eligible methods of preparing them for the table.
  • His reminiscences of good cheer, however ancient the date of the
  • actual banquet, seemed to bring the savor of pig or turkey under one's
  • very nostrils. There were flavors on his palate that had lingered
  • there not less than sixty or seventy years, and were still apparently
  • as fresh as that of the mutton-chop which he had just devoured for his
  • breakfast. I have heard him smack his lips over dinners, every guest
  • at which, except himself, had long been food for worms. It was
  • marvellous to observe how the ghosts of bygone meals were continually
  • rising up before him; not in anger or retribution, but as if grateful
  • for his former appreciation and seeking to resuscitate an endless
  • series of enjoyment, at once shadowy and sensual. A tender-loin of
  • beef, a hind-quarter of veal, a spare-rib of pork, a particular
  • chicken, or a remarkably praiseworthy turkey, which had perhaps
  • adorned his board in the days of the elder Adams, would be remembered;
  • while all the subsequent experience of our race, and all the events
  • that brightened or darkened his individual career, had gone over him
  • with as little permanent effect as the passing breeze. The chief
  • tragic event of the old man's life, so far as I could judge, was his
  • mishap with a certain goose which lived and died some twenty or forty
  • years ago; a goose of most promising figure, but which, at table,
  • proved so inveterately tough that the carving-knife would make no
  • impression on its carcass, and it could only be divided with an axe
  • and handsaw.
  • But it is time to quit this sketch; on which, however, I should be
  • glad to dwell at considerably more length because, of all men whom I
  • have ever known, this individual was fittest to be a Custom-House
  • officer. Most persons, owing to causes which I may not have space to
  • hint at, suffer moral detriment from this peculiar mode of life. The
  • old Inspector was incapable of it, and, were he to continue in office
  • to the end of time, would be just as good as he was then, and sit down
  • to dinner with just as good an appetite.
  • There is one likeness, without which my gallery of Custom-House
  • portraits would be strangely incomplete; but which my comparatively
  • few opportunities for observation enable me to sketch only in the
  • merest outline. It is that of the Collector, our gallant old General,
  • who, after his brilliant military service, subsequently to which he
  • had ruled over a wild Western territory, had come hither, twenty years
  • before, to spend the decline of his varied and honorable life. The
  • brave soldier had already numbered, nearly or quite, his threescore
  • years and ten, and was pursuing the remainder of his earthly march,
  • burdened with infirmities which even the martial music of his own
  • spirit-stirring recollections could do little towards lightening. The
  • step was palsied now that had been foremost in the charge. It was only
  • with the assistance of a servant, and by leaning his hand heavily on
  • the iron balustrade, that he could slowly and painfully ascend the
  • Custom-House steps, and, with a toilsome progress across the floor,
  • attain his customary chair beside the fireplace. There he used to sit,
  • gazing with a somewhat dim serenity of aspect at the figures that came
  • and went; amid the rustle of papers, the administering of oaths, the
  • discussion of business, and the casual talk of the office; all which
  • sounds and circumstances seemed but indistinctly to impress his
  • senses, and hardly to make their way into his inner sphere of
  • contemplation. His countenance, in this repose, was mild and kindly.
  • If his notice was sought, an expression of courtesy and interest
  • gleamed out upon his features; proving that there was light within
  • him, and that it was only the outward medium of the intellectual lamp
  • that obstructed the rays in their passage. The closer you penetrated
  • to the substance of his mind, the sounder it appeared. When no longer
  • called upon to speak, or listen, either of which operations cost him
  • an evident effort, his face would briefly subside into its former not
  • uncheerful quietude. It was not painful to behold this look; for,
  • though dim, it had not the imbecility of decaying age. The framework
  • of his nature, originally strong and massive, was not yet crumbled
  • into ruin.
  • To observe and define his character, however, under such
  • disadvantages, was as difficult a task as to trace out and build up
  • anew, in imagination, an old fortress, like Ticonderoga, from a view
  • of its gray and broken ruins. Here and there, perchance, the walls may
  • remain almost complete, but elsewhere may be only a shapeless mound,
  • cumbrous with its very strength, and overgrown, through long years of
  • peace and neglect, with grass and alien weeds.
  • Nevertheless, looking at the old warrior with affection,—for, slight
  • as was the communication between us, my feeling towards him, like that
  • of all bipeds and quadrupeds who knew him, might not improperly be
  • termed so,—I could discern the main points of his portrait. It was
  • marked with the noble and heroic qualities which showed it to be not
  • by a mere accident, but of good right, that he had won a distinguished
  • name. His spirit could never, I conceive, have been characterized by
  • an uneasy activity; it must, at any period of his life, have required
  • an impulse to set him in motion; but, once stirred up, with obstacles
  • to overcome, and an adequate object to be attained, it was not in the
  • man to give out or fail. The heat that had formerly pervaded his
  • nature, and which was not yet extinct, was never of the kind that
  • flashes and flickers in a blaze; but, rather, a deep, red glow, as of
  • iron in a furnace. Weight, solidity, firmness; this was the expression
  • of his repose, even in such decay as had crept untimely over him, at
  • the period of which I speak. But I could imagine, even then, that, under
  • some excitement which should go deeply into his consciousness,—roused
  • by a trumpet-peal, loud enough to awaken all his energies that were
  • not dead, but only slumbering,—he was yet capable of flinging off his
  • infirmities like a sick man's gown, dropping the staff of age to seize
  • a battle-sword, and starting up once more a warrior. And, in so
  • intense a moment, his demeanor would have still been calm. Such an
  • exhibition, however, was but to be pictured in fancy; not to be
  • anticipated, nor desired. What I saw in him—as evidently as the
  • indestructible ramparts of Old Ticonderoga already cited as the most
  • appropriate simile—were the features of stubborn and ponderous
  • endurance, which might well have amounted to obstinacy in his earlier
  • days; of integrity, that, like most of his other endowments, lay in a
  • somewhat heavy mass, and was just as unmalleable and unmanageable as a
  • ton of iron ore; and of benevolence, which, fiercely as he led the
  • bayonets on at Chippewa or Fort Erie, I take to be of quite as genuine
  • a stamp as what actuates any or all the polemical philanthropists of
  • the age. He had slain men with his own hand, for aught I
  • know,—certainly, they had fallen, like blades of grass at the sweep
  • of the scythe, before the charge to which his spirit imparted its
  • triumphant energy;—but, be that as it might, there was never in his
  • heart so much cruelty as would have brushed the down off a butterfly's
  • wing. I have not known the man to whose innate kindliness I would more
  • confidently make an appeal.
  • Many characteristics—and those, too, which contribute not the least
  • forcibly to impart resemblance in a sketch—must have vanished, or
  • been obscured, before I met the General. All merely graceful
  • attributes are usually the most evanescent; nor does Nature adorn the
  • human ruin with blossoms of new beauty, that have their roots and
  • proper nutriment only in the chinks and crevices of decay, as she sows
  • wall-flowers over the ruined fortress of Ticonderoga. Still, even in
  • respect of grace and beauty, there were points well worth noting. A
  • ray of humor, now and then, would make its way through the veil of dim
  • obstruction, and glimmer pleasantly upon our faces. A trait of native
  • elegance, seldom seen in the masculine character after childhood or
  • early youth, was shown in the General's fondness for the sight and
  • fragrance of flowers. An old soldier might be supposed to prize only
  • the bloody laurel on his brow; but here was one who seemed to have a
  • young girl's appreciation of the floral tribe.
  • There, beside the fireplace, the brave old General used to sit; while
  • the Surveyor—though seldom, when it could be avoided, taking upon
  • himself the difficult task of engaging him in conversation—was fond
  • of standing at a distance, and watching his quiet and almost
  • slumberous countenance. He seemed away from us, although we saw him
  • but a few yards off; remote, though we passed close beside his chair;
  • unattainable, though we might have stretched forth our hands and
  • touched his own. It might be that he lived a more real life within
  • his thoughts, than amid the unappropriate environment of the
  • Collector's office. The evolutions of the parade; the tumult of the
  • battle; the flourish of old, heroic music, heard thirty years
  • before;—such scenes and sounds, perhaps, were all alive before his
  • intellectual sense. Meanwhile, the merchants and shipmasters, the
  • spruce clerks and uncouth sailors, entered and departed; the bustle of
  • this commercial and custom-house life kept up its little murmur round
  • about him; and neither with the men nor their affairs did the General
  • appear to sustain the most distant relation. He was as much out of
  • place as an old sword—now rusty, but which had flashed once in the
  • battle's front, and showed still a bright gleam along its blade—would
  • have been, among the inkstands, paper-folders, and mahogany rulers, on
  • the Deputy Collector's desk.
  • There was one thing that much aided me in renewing and re-creating the
  • stalwart soldier of the Niagara frontier,—the man of true and simple
  • energy. It was the recollection of those memorable words of
  • his,—“I'll try, Sir!”—spoken on the very verge of a desperate and
  • heroic enterprise, and breathing the soul and spirit of New England
  • hardihood, comprehending all perils, and encountering all. If, in our
  • country, valor were rewarded by heraldic honor, this phrase—which it
  • seems so easy to speak, but which only he, with such a task of danger
  • and glory before him, has ever spoken—would be the best and fittest
  • of all mottoes for the General's shield of arms.
  • It contributes greatly towards a man's moral and intellectual health,
  • to be brought into habits of companionship with individuals unlike
  • himself, who care little for his pursuits, and whose sphere and
  • abilities he must go out of himself to appreciate. The accidents of
  • my life have often afforded me this advantage, but never with more
  • fulness and variety than during my continuance in office. There was
  • one man, especially, the observation of whose character gave me a new
  • idea of talent. His gifts were emphatically those of a man of
  • business; prompt, acute, clear-minded; with an eye that saw through
  • all perplexities, and a faculty of arrangement that made them vanish,
  • as by the waving of an enchanter's wand. Bred up from boyhood in the
  • Custom-House, it was his proper field of activity; and the many
  • intricacies of business, so harassing to the interloper, presented
  • themselves before him with the regularity of a perfectly comprehended
  • system. In my contemplation, he stood as the ideal of his class. He
  • was, indeed, the Custom-House in himself; or, at all events, the
  • main-spring that kept its variously revolving wheels in motion; for,
  • in an institution like this, where its officers are appointed to
  • subserve their own profit and convenience, and seldom with a leading
  • reference to their fitness for the duty to be performed, they must
  • perforce seek elsewhere the dexterity which is not in them. Thus, by
  • an inevitable necessity, as a magnet attracts steel-filings, so did
  • our man of business draw to himself the difficulties which everybody
  • met with. With an easy condescension, and kind forbearance towards our
  • stupidity,—which, to his order of mind, must have seemed little short
  • of crime,—would he forthwith, by the merest touch of his finger, make
  • the incomprehensible as clear as daylight. The merchants valued him
  • not less than we, his esoteric friends. His integrity was perfect: it
  • was a law of nature with him, rather than a choice or a principle; nor
  • can it be otherwise than the main condition of an intellect so
  • remarkably clear and accurate as his, to be honest and regular in the
  • administration of affairs. A stain on his conscience, as to anything
  • that came within the range of his vocation, would trouble such a man
  • very much in the same way, though to a far greater degree, that an
  • error in the balance of an account or an ink-blot on the fair page of
  • a book of record. Here, in a word,—and it is a rare instance in my
  • life,—I had met with a person thoroughly adapted to the situation
  • which he held.
  • Such were some of the people with whom I now found myself connected. I
  • took it in good part, at the hands of Providence, that I was thrown
  • into a position so little akin to my past habits, and set myself
  • seriously to gather from it whatever profit was to be had. After my
  • fellowship of toil and impracticable schemes with the dreamy brethren
  • of Brook Farm; after living for three years within the subtile
  • influence of an intellect like Emerson's; after those wild, free days
  • on the Assabeth, indulging fantastic speculations, beside our fire of
  • fallen boughs, with Ellery Channing; after talking with Thoreau about
  • pine-trees and Indian relics, in his hermitage at Walden; after
  • growing fastidious by sympathy with the classic refinement of
  • Hillard's culture; after becoming imbued with poetic sentiment at
  • Longfellow's hearthstone;—it was time, at length, that I should
  • exercise other faculties of my nature, and nourish myself with food
  • for which I had hitherto had little appetite. Even the old Inspector
  • was desirable, as a change of diet, to a man who had known Alcott. I
  • look upon it as an evidence, in some measure, of a system naturally
  • well balanced, and lacking no essential part of a thorough
  • organization, that, with such associates to remember, I could mingle
  • at once with men of altogether different qualities, and never murmur
  • at the change.
  • Literature, its exertions and objects, were now of little moment in
  • my regard. I cared not, at this period, for books; they were apart
  • from me. Nature,—except it were human nature,—the nature that is
  • developed in earth and sky, was, in one sense, hidden from me; and all
  • the imaginative delight, wherewith it had been spiritualized, passed
  • away out of my mind. A gift, a faculty if it had not departed, was
  • suspended and inanimate within me. There would have been something
  • sad, unutterably dreary, in all this, had I not been conscious that it
  • lay at my own option to recall whatever was valuable in the past. It
  • might be true, indeed, that this was a life which could not with
  • impunity be lived too long; else, it might have made me permanently
  • other than I had been without transforming me into any shape which it
  • would be worth my while to take. But I never considered it as other
  • than a transitory life. There was always a prophetic instinct, a low
  • whisper in my ear, that, within no long period, and whenever a new
  • change of custom should be essential to my good, a change would come.
  • Meanwhile, there I was, a Surveyor of the Revenue, and, so far as I
  • have been able to understand, as good a Surveyor as need be. A man of
  • thought, fancy, and sensibility (had he ten times the Surveyor's
  • proportion of those qualities) may, at any time, be a man of affairs,
  • if he will only choose to give himself the trouble. My fellow-officers,
  • and the merchants and sea-captains with whom my official duties
  • brought me into any manner of connection, viewed me in no other light,
  • and probably knew me in no other character. None of them, I presume,
  • had ever read a page of my inditing, or would have cared a fig the
  • more for me, if they had read them all; nor would it have mended the
  • matter, in the least, had those same unprofitable pages been written
  • with a pen like that of Burns or of Chaucer, each of whom was a
  • custom-house officer in his day, as well as I. It is a good
  • lesson—though it may often be a hard one—for a man who has dreamed of
  • literary fame, and of making for himself a rank among the world's
  • dignitaries by such means, to step aside out of the narrow circle in
  • which his claims are recognized, and to find how utterly devoid of
  • significance, beyond that circle, is all that he achieves, and all he
  • aims at. I know not that I especially needed the lesson, either in the
  • way of warning or rebuke; but, at any rate, I learned it thoroughly:
  • nor, it gives me pleasure to reflect, did the truth, as it came home
  • to my perception, ever cost me a pang, or require to be thrown off in
  • a sigh. In the way of literary talk, it is true, the Naval Officer—an
  • excellent fellow, who came into office with me and went out only a
  • little later—would often engage me in a discussion about one or the
  • other of his favorite topics, Napoleon or Shakespeare. The Collector's
  • junior clerk, too—a young gentleman who, it was whispered,
  • occasionally covered a sheet of Uncle Sam's letter-paper with what (at
  • the distance of a few yards) looked very much like poetry—used now and
  • then to speak to me of books, as matters with which I might possibly
  • be conversant. This was my all of lettered intercourse; and it was
  • quite sufficient for my necessities.
  • No longer seeking nor caring that my name should be blazoned abroad on
  • title-pages, I smiled to think that it had now another kind of vogue.
  • The Custom-House marker imprinted it, with a stencil and black paint,
  • on pepper-bags, and baskets of anatto, and cigar-boxes, and bales of
  • all kinds of dutiable merchandise, in testimony that these commodities
  • had paid the impost, and gone regularly through the office. Borne on
  • such queer vehicle of fame, a knowledge of my existence, so far as a
  • name conveys it, was carried where it had never been before, and, I
  • hope, will never go again.
  • But the past was not dead. Once in a great while the thoughts that had
  • seemed so vital and so active, yet had been put to rest so quietly,
  • revived again. One of the most remarkable occasions, when the habit of
  • bygone days awoke in me, was that which brings it within the law of
  • literary propriety to offer the public the sketch which I am now
  • writing.
  • In the second story of the Custom-House there is a large room, in
  • which the brick-work and naked rafters have never been covered with
  • panelling and plaster. The edifice—originally projected on a scale
  • adapted to the old commercial enterprise of the port, and with an idea
  • of subsequent prosperity destined never to be realized—contains far
  • more space than its occupants know what to do with. This airy hall,
  • therefore, over the Collector's apartments, remains unfinished to this
  • day, and, in spite of the aged cobwebs that festoon its dusky beams,
  • appears still to await the labor of the carpenter and mason. At one
  • end of the room, in a recess, were a number of barrels, piled one upon
  • another, containing bundles of official documents. Large quantities of
  • similar rubbish lay lumbering the floor. It was sorrowful to think how
  • many days and weeks and months and years of toil had been wasted on
  • these musty papers, which were now only an encumbrance on earth, and
  • were hidden away in this forgotten corner, never more to be glanced at
  • by human eyes. But, then, what reams of other manuscripts—filled not
  • with the dulness of official formalities, but with the thought of
  • inventive brains and the rich effusion of deep hearts—had gone
  • equally to oblivion; and that, moreover, without serving a purpose in
  • their day, as these heaped-up papers had, and—saddest of
  • all—without purchasing for their writers the comfortable livelihood
  • which the clerks of the Custom-House had gained by these worthless
  • scratchings of the pen! Yet not altogether worthless, perhaps, as
  • materials of local history. Here, no doubt, statistics of the former
  • commerce of Salem might be discovered, and memorials of her princely
  • merchants,—old King Derby, old Billy Gray, old Simon Forrester, and
  • many another magnate in his day; whose powdered head, however, was
  • scarcely in the tomb, before his mountain pile of wealth began to
  • dwindle. The founders of the greater part of the families which now
  • compose the aristocracy of Salem might here be traced, from the petty
  • and obscure beginnings of their traffic, at periods generally much
  • posterior to the Revolution, upward to what their children look upon
  • as long-established rank.
  • Prior to the Revolution there is a dearth of records; the earlier
  • documents and archives of the Custom-House having, probably, been
  • carried off to Halifax, when all the King's officials accompanied the
  • British army in its flight from Boston. It has often been a matter of
  • regret with me; for, going back, perhaps, to the days of the
  • Protectorate, those papers must have contained many references to
  • forgotten or remembered men, and to antique customs, which would have
  • affected me with the same pleasure as when I used to pick up Indian
  • arrow-heads in the field near the Old Manse.
  • But, one idle and rainy day, it was my fortune to make a discovery of
  • some little interest. Poking and burrowing into the heaped-up rubbish
  • in the corner; unfolding one and another document, and reading the
  • names of vessels that had long ago foundered at sea or rotted at the
  • wharves, and those of merchants, never heard of now on 'Change, nor
  • very readily decipherable on their mossy tombstones; glancing at such
  • matters with the saddened, weary, half-reluctant interest which we
  • bestow on the corpse of dead activity,—and exerting my fancy,
  • sluggish with little use, to raise up from these dry bones an image of
  • the old town's brighter aspect, when India was a new region, and only
  • Salem knew the way thither,—I chanced to lay my hand on a small
  • package, carefully done up in a piece of ancient yellow parchment.
  • This envelope had the air of an official record of some period long
  • past, when clerks engrossed their stiff and formal chirography on more
  • substantial materials than at present. There was something about it
  • that quickened an instinctive curiosity, and made me undo the faded
  • red tape, that tied up the package, with the sense that a treasure
  • would here be brought to light. Unbending the rigid folds of the
  • parchment cover, I found it to be a commission, under the hand and
  • seal of Governor Shirley, in favor of one Jonathan Pue, as Surveyor of
  • his Majesty's Customs for the port of Salem, in the Province of
  • Massachusetts Bay. I remember to have read (probably in Felt's Annals)
  • a notice of the decease of Mr. Surveyor Pue, about fourscore years
  • ago; and likewise, in a newspaper of recent times, an account of the
  • digging up of his remains in the little graveyard of St. Peter's
  • Church, during the renewal of that edifice. Nothing, if I rightly call
  • to mind, was left of my respected predecessor, save an imperfect
  • skeleton, and some fragments of apparel, and a wig of majestic
  • frizzle; which, unlike the head that it once adorned, was in very
  • satisfactory preservation. But, on examining the papers which the
  • parchment commission served to envelop, I found more traces of Mr.
  • Pue's mental part, and the internal operations of his head, than the
  • frizzled wig had contained of the venerable skull itself.
  • They were documents, in short, not official, but of a private nature,
  • or at least written in his private capacity, and apparently with his
  • own hand. I could account for their being included in the heap of
  • Custom-House lumber only by the fact that Mr. Pue's death had happened
  • suddenly; and that these papers, which he probably kept in his
  • official desk, had never come to the knowledge of his heirs, or were
  • supposed to relate to the business of the revenue. On the transfer of
  • the archives to Halifax, this package, proving to be of no public
  • concern, was left behind, and had remained ever since unopened.
  • The ancient Surveyor—being little molested, I suppose, at that early
  • day, with business pertaining to his office—seems to have devoted
  • some of his many leisure hours to researches as a local antiquarian,
  • and other inquisitions of a similar nature. These supplied material
  • for petty activity to a mind that would otherwise have been eaten up
  • with rust. A portion of his facts, by the by, did me good service in
  • the preparation of the article entitled “MAIN STREET,” included in the
  • present volume. The remainder may perhaps be applied to purposes
  • equally valuable, hereafter; or not impossibly may be worked up, so
  • far as they go, into a regular history of Salem, should my veneration
  • for the natal soil ever impel me to so pious a task. Meanwhile, they
  • shall be at the command of any gentleman, inclined, and competent, to
  • take the unprofitable labor off my hands. As a final disposition, I
  • contemplate depositing them with the Essex Historical Society.
  • But the object that most drew my attention, in the mysterious package,
  • was a certain affair of fine red cloth, much worn and faded. There
  • were traces about it of gold embroidery, which, however, was greatly
  • frayed and defaced; so that none, or very little, of the glitter was
  • left. It had been wrought, as was easy to perceive, with wonderful
  • skill of needlework; and the stitch (as I am assured by ladies
  • conversant with such mysteries) gives evidence of a now forgotten art,
  • not to be recovered even by the process of picking out the threads.
  • This rag of scarlet cloth,—for time and wear and a sacrilegious moth
  • had reduced it to little other than a rag,—on careful examination,
  • assumed the shape of a letter. It was the capital letter A. By an
  • accurate measurement, each limb proved to be precisely three inches
  • and a quarter in length. It had been intended, there could be no
  • doubt, as an ornamental article of dress; but how it was to be worn,
  • or what rank, honor, and dignity, in by-past times, were signified by
  • it, was a riddle which (so evanescent are the fashions of the world in
  • these particulars) I saw little hope of solving. And yet it strangely
  • interested me. My eyes fastened themselves upon the old scarlet
  • letter, and would not be turned aside. Certainly, there was some deep
  • meaning in it, most worthy of interpretation, and which, as it were,
  • streamed forth from the mystic symbol, subtly communicating itself to
  • my sensibilities, but evading the analysis of my mind.
  • While thus perplexed,—and cogitating, among other hypotheses, whether
  • the letter might not have been one of those decorations which the
  • white men used to contrive, in order to take the eyes of Indians,—I
  • happened to place it on my breast. It seemed to me,—the reader may
  • smile, but must not doubt my word,—it seemed to me, then, that I
  • experienced a sensation not altogether physical, yet almost so, of
  • burning heat; and as if the letter were not of red cloth, but red-hot
  • iron. I shuddered, and involuntarily let it fall upon the floor.
  • In the absorbing contemplation of the scarlet letter, I had hitherto
  • neglected to examine a small roll of dingy paper, around which it had
  • been twisted. This I now opened, and had the satisfaction to find,
  • recorded by the old Surveyor's pen, a reasonably complete explanation
  • of the whole affair. There were several foolscap sheets containing
  • many particulars respecting the life and conversation of one Hester
  • Prynne, who appeared to have been rather a noteworthy personage in the
  • view of our ancestors. She had flourished during the period between
  • the early days of Massachusetts and the close of the seventeenth
  • century. Aged persons, alive in the time of Mr. Surveyor Pue, and from
  • whose oral testimony he had made up his narrative, remembered her, in
  • their youth, as a very old, but not decrepit woman, of a stately and
  • solemn aspect. It had been her habit, from an almost immemorial date,
  • to go about the country as a kind of voluntary nurse, and doing
  • whatever miscellaneous good she might; taking upon herself, likewise,
  • to give advice in all matters, especially those of the heart; by which
  • means, as a person of such propensities inevitably must, she gained
  • from many people the reverence due to an angel, but, I should imagine,
  • was looked upon by others as an intruder and a nuisance. Prying
  • further into the manuscript, I found the record of other doings and
  • sufferings of this singular woman, for most of which the reader is
  • referred to the story entitled “THE SCARLET LETTER”; and it should be
  • borne carefully in mind, that the main facts of that story are
  • authorized and authenticated by the document of Mr. Surveyor Pue. The
  • original papers, together with the scarlet letter itself,—a most
  • curious relic,—are still in my possession, and shall be freely
  • exhibited to whomsoever, induced by the great interest of the
  • narrative, may desire a sight of them. I must not be understood as
  • affirming, that, in the dressing up of the tale, and imagining the
  • motives and modes of passion that influenced the characters who figure
  • in it, I have invariably confined myself within the limits of the old
  • Surveyor's half a dozen sheets of foolscap. On the contrary, I have
  • allowed myself, as to such points, nearly or altogether as much
  • license as if the facts had been entirely of my own invention. What I
  • contend for is the authenticity of the outline.
  • This incident recalled my mind, in some degree, to its old track.
  • There seemed to be here the groundwork of a tale. It impressed me as
  • if the ancient Surveyor, in his garb of a hundred years gone by, and
  • wearing his immortal wig,—which was buried with him, but did not
  • perish in the grave,—had met me in the deserted chamber of the
  • Custom-House. In his port was the dignity of one who had borne his
  • Majesty's commission, and who was therefore illuminated by a ray of
  • the splendor that shone so dazzlingly about the throne. How unlike,
  • alas! the hang-dog look of a republican official, who, as the servant
  • of the people, feels himself less than the least, and below the
  • lowest, of his masters. With his own ghostly hand, the obscurely seen
  • but majestic figure had imparted to me the scarlet symbol, and the
  • little roll of explanatory manuscript. With his own ghostly voice, he
  • had exhorted me, on the sacred consideration of my filial duty and
  • reverence towards him,—who might reasonably regard himself as my
  • official ancestor,—to bring his mouldy and moth-eaten lucubrations
  • before the public. “Do this,” said the ghost of Mr. Surveyor Pue,
  • emphatically nodding the head that looked so imposing within its
  • memorable wig,—“do this, and the profit shall be all your own! You
  • will shortly need it; for it is not in your days as it was in mine,
  • when a man's office was a life-lease, and oftentimes an heirloom.
  • But, I charge you, in this matter of old Mistress Prynne, give to your
  • predecessor's memory the credit which will be rightfully due!” And I
  • said to the ghost of Mr. Surveyor Pue, “I will!”
  • On Hester Prynne's story, therefore, I bestowed much thought. It was
  • the subject of my meditations for many an hour, while pacing to and
  • fro across my room, or traversing, with a hundred-fold repetition, the
  • long extent from the front-door of the Custom-House to the
  • side-entrance, and back again. Great were the weariness and annoyance
  • of the old Inspector and the Weighers and Gaugers, whose slumbers were
  • disturbed by the unmercifully lengthened tramp of my passing and
  • returning footsteps. Remembering their own former habits, they used to
  • say that the Surveyor was walking the quarter-deck. They probably
  • fancied that my sole object—and, indeed, the sole object for which a
  • sane man could ever put himself into voluntary motion—was, to get an
  • appetite for dinner. And to say the truth, an appetite, sharpened by
  • the east wind that generally blew along the passage, was the only
  • valuable result of so much indefatigable exercise. So little adapted
  • is the atmosphere of a custom-house to the delicate harvest of fancy
  • and sensibility, that, had I remained there through ten Presidencies
  • yet to come, I doubt whether the tale of “The Scarlet Letter” would
  • ever have been brought before the public eye. My imagination was a
  • tarnished mirror. It would not reflect, or only with miserable
  • dimness, the figures with which I did my best to people it. The
  • characters of the narrative would not be warmed and rendered malleable
  • by any heat that I could kindle at my intellectual forge. They would
  • take neither the glow of passion nor the tenderness of sentiment, but
  • retained all the rigidity of dead corpses, and stared me in the face
  • with a fixed and ghastly grin of contemptuous defiance. “What have you
  • to do with us?” that expression seemed to say. “The little power you
  • might once have possessed over the tribe of unrealities is gone! You
  • have bartered it for a pittance of the public gold. Go, then, and earn
  • your wages!” In short, the almost torpid creatures of my own fancy
  • twitted me with imbecility, and not without fair occasion.
  • It was not merely during the three hours and a half which Uncle Sam
  • claimed as his share of my daily life, that this wretched numbness
  • held possession of me. It went with me on my sea-shore walks, and
  • rambles into the country, whenever—which was seldom and
  • reluctantly—I bestirred myself to seek that invigorating charm of
  • Nature, which used to give me such freshness and activity of thought
  • the moment that I stepped across the threshold of the Old Manse. The
  • same torpor, as regarded the capacity for intellectual effort,
  • accompanied me home, and weighed upon me in the chamber which I most
  • absurdly termed my study. Nor did it quit me, when, late at night, I
  • sat in the deserted parlor, lighted only by the glimmering coal-fire
  • and the moon, striving to picture forth imaginary scenes, which, the
  • next day, might flow out on the brightening page in many-hued
  • description.
  • If the imaginative faculty refused to act at such an hour, it might
  • well be deemed a hopeless case. Moonlight, in a familiar room, falling
  • so white upon the carpet, and showing all its figures so
  • distinctly,—making every object so minutely visible, yet so unlike a
  • morning or noontide visibility,—is a medium the most suitable for a
  • romance-writer to get acquainted with his illusive guests. There is
  • the little domestic scenery of the well-known apartment; the chairs,
  • with each its separate individuality; the centre-table, sustaining a
  • work-basket, a volume or two, and an extinguished lamp; the sofa; the
  • bookcase; the picture on the wall;—all these details, so completely
  • seen, are so spiritualized by the unusual light, that they seem to
  • lose their actual substance, and become things of intellect. Nothing
  • is too small or too trifling to undergo this change, and acquire
  • dignity thereby. A child's shoe; the doll, seated in her little wicker
  • carriage; the hobby-horse;—whatever, in a word, has been used or
  • played with, during the day, is now invested with a quality of
  • strangeness and remoteness, though still almost as vividly present as
  • by daylight. Thus, therefore, the floor of our familiar room has
  • become a neutral territory, somewhere between the real world and
  • fairy-land, where the Actual and the Imaginary may meet, and each
  • imbue itself with the nature of the other. Ghosts might enter here,
  • without affrighting us. It would be too much in keeping with the scene
  • to excite surprise, were we to look about us and discover a form
  • beloved, but gone hence, now sitting quietly in a streak of this magic
  • moonshine, with an aspect that would make us doubt whether it had
  • returned from afar, or had never once stirred from our fireside.
  • The somewhat dim coal-fire has an essential influence in producing the
  • effect which I would describe. It throws its unobtrusive tinge
  • throughout the room, with a faint ruddiness upon the walls and
  • ceiling, and a reflected gleam from the polish of the furniture. This
  • warmer light mingles itself with the cold spirituality of the
  • moonbeams, and communicates, as it were, a heart and sensibilities of
  • human tenderness to the forms which fancy summons up. It converts them
  • from snow-images into men and women. Glancing at the looking-glass, we
  • behold—deep within its haunted verge—the smouldering glow of the
  • half-extinguished anthracite, the white moonbeams on the floor, and a
  • repetition of all the gleam and shadow of the picture, with one remove
  • further from the actual, and nearer to the imaginative. Then, at such
  • an hour, and with this scene before him, if a man, sitting all alone,
  • cannot dream strange things, and make them look like truth, he need
  • never try to write romances.
  • But, for myself, during the whole of my Custom-House experience,
  • moonlight and sunshine, and the glow of firelight, were just alike in
  • my regard; and neither of them was of one whit more avail than the
  • twinkle of a tallow-candle. An entire class of susceptibilities, and a
  • gift connected with them,—of no great richness or value, but the best
  • I had,—was gone from me.
  • It is my belief, however, that, had I attempted a different order of
  • composition, my faculties would not have been found so pointless and
  • inefficacious. I might, for instance, have contented myself with
  • writing out the narratives of a veteran shipmaster, one of the
  • Inspectors, whom I should be most ungrateful not to mention, since
  • scarcely a day passed that he did not stir me to laughter and
  • admiration by his marvellous gifts as a story-teller. Could I have
  • preserved the picturesque force of his style, and the humorous
  • coloring which nature taught him how to throw over his descriptions,
  • the result, I honestly believe, would have been something new in
  • literature. Or I might readily have found a more serious task. It was
  • a folly, with the materiality of this daily life pressing so
  • intrusively upon me, to attempt to fling myself back into another age;
  • or to insist on creating the semblance of a world out of airy matter,
  • when, at every moment, the impalpable beauty of my soap-bubble was
  • broken by the rude contact of some actual circumstance. The wiser
  • effort would have been, to diffuse thought and imagination through
  • the opaque substance of to-day, and thus to make it a bright
  • transparency; to spiritualize the burden that began to weigh so
  • heavily; to seek, resolutely, the true and indestructible value that
  • lay hidden in the petty and wearisome incidents, and ordinary
  • characters, with which I was now conversant. The fault was mine. The
  • page of life that was spread out before me seemed dull and
  • commonplace, only because I had not fathomed its deeper import. A
  • better book than I shall ever write was there; leaf after leaf
  • presenting itself to me, just as it was written out by the reality of
  • the flitting hour, and vanishing as fast as written, only because my
  • brain wanted the insight and my hand the cunning to transcribe it. At
  • some future day, it may be, I shall remember a few scattered fragments
  • and broken paragraphs, and write them down, and find the letters turn
  • to gold upon the page.
  • These perceptions have come too late. At the instant, I was only
  • conscious that what would have been a pleasure once was now a hopeless
  • toil. There was no occasion to make much moan about this state of
  • affairs. I had ceased to be a writer of tolerably poor tales and
  • essays, and had become a tolerably good Surveyor of the Customs. That
  • was all. But, nevertheless, it is anything but agreeable to be haunted
  • by a suspicion that one's intellect is dwindling away; or exhaling,
  • without your consciousness, like ether out of a phial; so that, at
  • every glance, you find a smaller and less volatile residuum. Of the
  • fact there could be no doubt; and, examining myself and others, I was
  • led to conclusions, in reference to the effect of public office on the
  • character, not very favorable to the mode of life in question. In some
  • other form, perhaps, I may hereafter develop these effects. Suffice it
  • here to say, that a Custom-House officer, of long continuance, can
  • hardly be a very praiseworthy or respectable personage, for many
  • reasons; one of them, the tenure by which he holds his situation, and
  • another, the very nature of his business, which—though, I trust, an
  • honest one—is of such a sort that he does not share in the united
  • effort of mankind.
  • An effect—which I believe to be observable, more or less, in every
  • individual who has occupied the position—is, that, while he leans on
  • the mighty arm of the Republic, his own proper strength departs from
  • him. He loses, in an extent proportioned to the weakness or force of
  • his original nature, the capability of self-support. If he possess an
  • unusual share of native energy, or the enervating magic of place do
  • not operate too long upon him, his forfeited powers may be redeemable.
  • The ejected officer—fortunate in the unkindly shove that sends him
  • forth betimes, to struggle amid a struggling world—may return to
  • himself, and become all that he has ever been. But this seldom
  • happens. He usually keeps his ground just long enough for his own
  • ruin, and is then thrust out, with sinews all unstrung, to totter
  • along the difficult footpath of life as he best may. Conscious of his
  • own infirmity,—that his tempered steel and elasticity are lost,—he
  • forever afterwards looks wistfully about him in quest of support
  • external to himself. His pervading and continual hope—a hallucination
  • which, in the face of all discouragement, and making light of
  • impossibilities, haunts him while he lives, and, I fancy, like the
  • convulsive throes of the cholera, torments him for a brief space after
  • death—is, that finally, and in no long time, by some happy
  • coincidence of circumstances, he shall be restored to office. This
  • faith, more than anything else, steals the pith and availability out
  • of whatever enterprise he may dream of undertaking. Why should he toil
  • and moil, and be at so much trouble to pick himself up out of the
  • mud, when, in a little while hence, the strong arm of his Uncle will
  • raise and support him? Why should he work for his living here, or go
  • to dig gold in California, when he is so soon to be made happy, at
  • monthly intervals, with a little pile of glittering coin out of his
  • Uncle's pocket? It is sadly curious to observe how slight a taste of
  • office suffices to infect a poor fellow with this singular disease.
  • Uncle Sam's gold—meaning no disrespect to the worthy old
  • gentleman—has, in this respect, a quality of enchantment like that of
  • the Devil's wages. Whoever touches it should look well to himself, or
  • he may find the bargain to go hard against him, involving, if not his
  • soul, yet many of its better attributes; its sturdy force, its courage
  • and constancy, its truth, its self-reliance, and all that gives the
  • emphasis to manly character.
  • Here was a fine prospect in the distance! Not that the Surveyor
  • brought the lesson home to himself, or admitted that he could be so
  • utterly undone, either by continuance in office, or ejectment. Yet my
  • reflections were not the most comfortable. I began to grow melancholy
  • and restless; continually prying into my mind, to discover which of
  • its poor properties were gone, and what degree of detriment had
  • already accrued to the remainder. I endeavored to calculate how much
  • longer I could stay in the Custom-House, and yet go forth a man. To
  • confess the truth, it was my greatest apprehension,—as it would never
  • be a measure of policy to turn out so quiet an individual as myself,
  • and it being hardly in the nature of a public officer to resign,—it
  • was my chief trouble, therefore, that I was likely to grow gray and
  • decrepit in the Surveyorship, and become much such another animal as
  • the old Inspector. Might it not, in the tedious lapse of official
  • life that lay before me, finally be with me as it was with this
  • venerable friend,—to make the dinner-hour the nucleus of the day, and
  • to spend the rest of it, as an old dog spends it, asleep in the
  • sunshine or in the shade? A dreary look-forward this, for a man who
  • felt it to be the best definition of happiness to live throughout the
  • whole range of his faculties and sensibilities! But, all this while, I
  • was giving myself very unnecessary alarm. Providence had meditated
  • better things for me than I could possibly imagine for myself.
  • A remarkable event of the third year of my Surveyorship—to adopt the
  • tone of “P. P.”—was the election of General Taylor to the Presidency.
  • It is essential, in order to form a complete estimate of the advantages of
  • official life, to view the incumbent at the incoming of a hostile
  • administration. His position is then one of the most singularly
  • irksome, and, in every contingency, disagreeable, that a wretched
  • mortal can possibly occupy; with seldom an alternative of good, on
  • either hand, although what presents itself to him as the worst event
  • may very probably be the best. But it is a strange experience, to a
  • man of pride and sensibility, to know that his interests are within
  • the control of individuals who neither love nor understand him, and by
  • whom, since one or the other must needs happen, he would rather be
  • injured than obliged. Strange, too, for one who has kept his calmness
  • throughout the contest, to observe the blood-thirstiness that is
  • developed in the hour of triumph, and to be conscious that he is
  • himself among its objects! There are few uglier traits of human nature
  • than this tendency—which I now witnessed in men no worse than their
  • neighbors—to grow cruel, merely because they possessed the power of
  • inflicting harm. If the guillotine, as applied to office-holders,
  • were a literal fact instead of one of the most apt of metaphors, it is
  • my sincere belief that the active members of the victorious party were
  • sufficiently excited to have chopped off all our heads, and have
  • thanked Heaven for the opportunity! It appears to me—who have been a
  • calm and curious observer, as well in victory as defeat—that this
  • fierce and bitter spirit of malice and revenge has never distinguished
  • the many triumphs of my own party as it now did that of the Whigs. The
  • Democrats take the offices, as a general rule, because they need them,
  • and because the practice of many years has made it the law of
  • political warfare, which, unless a different system be proclaimed, it
  • were weakness and cowardice to murmur at. But the long habit of
  • victory has made them generous. They know how to spare, when they see
  • occasion; and when they strike, the axe may be sharp, indeed, but its
  • edge is seldom poisoned with ill-will; nor is it their custom
  • ignominiously to kick the head which they have just struck off.
  • In short, unpleasant as was my predicament, at best, I saw much reason
  • to congratulate myself that I was on the losing side, rather than the
  • triumphant one. If, heretofore, I had been none of the warmest of
  • partisans, I began now, at this season of peril and adversity, to be
  • pretty acutely sensible with which party my predilections lay; nor was
  • it without something like regret and shame, that, according to a
  • reasonable calculation of chances, I saw my own prospect of retaining
  • office to be better than those of my Democratic brethren. But who can
  • see an inch into futurity, beyond his nose? My own head was the first
  • that fell!
  • The moment when a man's head drops off is seldom or never, I am
  • inclined to think, precisely the most agreeable of his life.
  • Nevertheless, like the greater part of our misfortunes, even so
  • serious a contingency brings its remedy and consolation with it, if
  • the sufferer will but make the best, rather than the worst, of the
  • accident which has befallen him. In my particular case, the
  • consolatory topics were close at hand, and, indeed, had suggested
  • themselves to my meditations a considerable time before it was
  • requisite to use them. In view of my previous weariness of office, and
  • vague thoughts of resignation, my fortune somewhat resembled that of a
  • person who should entertain an idea of committing suicide, and,
  • although beyond his hopes, meet with the good hap to be murdered. In
  • the Custom-House, as before in the Old Manse, I had spent three years;
  • a term long enough to rest a weary brain; long enough to break off old
  • intellectual habits, and make room for new ones; long enough, and too
  • long, to have lived in an unnatural state, doing what was really of no
  • advantage nor delight to any human being, and withholding myself from
  • toil that would, at least, have stilled an unquiet impulse in me.
  • Then, moreover, as regarded his unceremonious ejectment, the late
  • Surveyor was not altogether ill-pleased to be recognized by the Whigs
  • as an enemy; since his inactivity in political affairs—his tendency
  • to roam, at will, in that broad and quiet field where all mankind may
  • meet, rather than confine himself to those narrow paths where brethren
  • of the same household must diverge from one another—had sometimes
  • made it questionable with his brother Democrats whether he was a
  • friend. Now, after he had won the crown of martyrdom (though with no
  • longer a head to wear it on), the point might be looked upon as
  • settled. Finally, little heroic as he was, it seemed more decorous to
  • be overthrown in the downfall of the party with which he had been
  • content to stand, than to remain a forlorn survivor, when so many
  • worthier men were falling; and, at last, after subsisting for four
  • years on the mercy of a hostile administration, to be compelled then
  • to define his position anew, and claim the yet more humiliating mercy
  • of a friendly one.
  • Meanwhile the press had taken up my affair, and kept me, for a week or
  • two, careering through the public prints, in my decapitated state,
  • like Irving's Headless Horseman; ghastly and grim, and longing to be
  • buried, as a politically dead man ought. So much for my figurative
  • self. The real human being, all this time, with his head safely on his
  • shoulders, had brought himself to the comfortable conclusion that
  • everything was for the best; and, making an investment in ink, paper,
  • and steel-pens, had opened his long-disused writing-desk, and was
  • again a literary man.
  • Now it was that the lucubrations of my ancient predecessor, Mr.
  • Surveyor Pue, came into play. Rusty through long idleness, some little
  • space was requisite before my intellectual machinery could be brought
  • to work upon the tale, with an effect in any degree satisfactory. Even
  • yet, though my thoughts were ultimately much absorbed in the task, it
  • wears, to my eye, a stern and sombre aspect; too much ungladdened by
  • genial sunshine; too little relieved by the tender and familiar
  • influences which soften almost every scene of nature and real life,
  • and, undoubtedly, should soften every picture of them. This
  • uncaptivating effect is perhaps due to the period of hardly
  • accomplished revolution, and still seething turmoil, in which the
  • story shaped itself. It is no indication, however, of a lack of
  • cheerfulness in the writer's mind; for he was happier, while straying
  • through the gloom of these sunless fantasies, than at any time since
  • he had quitted the Old Manse. Some of the briefer articles, which
  • contribute to make up the volume, have likewise been written since my
  • involuntary withdrawal from the toils and honors of public life, and
  • the remainder are gleaned from annuals and magazines of such antique
  • date that they have gone round the circle, and come back to novelty
  • again.[1] Keeping up the metaphor of the political guillotine, the
  • whole may be considered as the POSTHUMOUS PAPERS OF A DECAPITATED
  • SURVEYOR; and the sketch which I am now bringing to a close, if too
  • autobiographical for a modest person to publish in his lifetime, will
  • readily be excused in a gentleman who writes from beyond the grave.
  • Peace be with all the world! My blessing on my friends! My forgiveness
  • to my enemies! For I am in the realm of quiet!
  • [Footnote 1: At the time of writing this article the author
  • intended to publish, along with “The Scarlet Letter,” several
  • shorter tales and sketches. These it has been thought
  • advisable to defer.]
  • The life of the Custom-House lies like a dream behind me. The old
  • Inspector,—who, by the by, I regret to say, was overthrown and killed
  • by a horse, some time ago; else he would certainly have lived
  • forever,—he, and all those other venerable personages who sat with
  • him at the receipt of custom, are but shadows in my view; white-headed
  • and wrinkled images, which my fancy used to sport with, and has now
  • flung aside forever. The merchants,—Pingree, Phillips, Shepard,
  • Upton, Kimball, Bertram, Hunt,—these, and many other names, which had
  • such a classic familiarity for my ear six months ago,—these men of
  • traffic, who seemed to occupy so important a position in the
  • world,—how little time has it required to disconnect me from them
  • all, not merely in act, but recollection! It is with an effort that I
  • recall the figures and appellations of these few. Soon, likewise, my
  • old native town will loom upon me through the haze of memory, a mist
  • brooding over and around it; as if it were no portion of the real
  • earth, but an overgrown village in cloud-land, with only imaginary
  • inhabitants to people its wooden houses, and walk its homely lanes,
  • and the unpicturesque prolixity of its main street. Henceforth it
  • ceases to be a reality of my life. I am a citizen of somewhere else.
  • My good towns-people will not much regret me; for—though it has been
  • as dear an object as any, in my literary efforts, to be of some
  • importance in their eyes, and to win myself a pleasant memory in this
  • abode and burial-place of so many of my forefathers—_there_ has never
  • been, for me, the genial atmosphere which a literary man requires, in
  • order to ripen the best harvest of his mind. I shall do better amongst
  • other faces; and these familiar ones, it need hardly be said, will do
  • just as well without me.
  • It may be, however,—O, transporting and triumphant thought!—that the
  • great-grandchildren of the present race may sometimes think kindly of
  • the scribbler of bygone days, when the antiquary of days to come,
  • among the sites memorable in the town's history, shall point out the
  • locality of THE TOWN PUMP!
  • [Illustration]
  • [Illustration: The Prison Door]
  • [Illustration: Vignette,—Wild Rose]
  • THE SCARLET LETTER.
  • I.
  • THE PRISON-DOOR.
  • [Illustration]
  • A throng of bearded men, in sad-colored garments, and gray,
  • steeple-crowned hats, intermixed with women, some wearing hoods and
  • others bareheaded, was assembled in front of a wooden edifice, the
  • door of which was heavily timbered with oak, and studded with iron
  • spikes.
  • The founders of a new colony, whatever Utopia of human virtue and
  • happiness they might originally project, have invariably recognized it
  • among their earliest practical necessities to allot a portion of the
  • virgin soil as a cemetery, and another portion as the site of a
  • prison. In accordance with this rule, it may safely be assumed that
  • the forefathers of Boston had built the first prison-house somewhere
  • in the vicinity of Cornhill, almost as seasonably as they marked out
  • the first burial-ground, on Isaac Johnson's lot, and round about his
  • grave, which subsequently became the nucleus of all the congregated
  • sepulchres in the old churchyard of King's Chapel. Certain it is,
  • that, some fifteen or twenty years after the settlement of the town,
  • the wooden jail was already marked with weather-stains and other
  • indications of age, which gave a yet darker aspect to its
  • beetle-browed and gloomy front. The rust on the ponderous iron-work of
  • its oaken door looked more antique than anything else in the New
  • World. Like all that pertains to crime, it seemed never to have known
  • a youthful era. Before this ugly edifice, and between it and the
  • wheel-track of the street, was a grass-plot, much overgrown with
  • burdock, pigweed, apple-peru, and such unsightly vegetation, which
  • evidently found something congenial in the soil that had so early
  • borne the black flower of civilized society, a prison. But on one side
  • of the portal, and rooted almost at the threshold, was a wild
  • rose-bush, covered, in this month of June, with its delicate gems,
  • which might be imagined to offer their fragrance and fragile beauty to
  • the prisoner as he went in, and to the condemned criminal as he came
  • forth to his doom, in token that the deep heart of Nature could pity
  • and be kind to him.
  • This rose-bush, by a strange chance, has been kept alive in history;
  • but whether it had merely survived out of the stern old wilderness, so
  • long after the fall of the gigantic pines and oaks that originally
  • overshadowed it,—or whether, as there is fair authority for
  • believing, it had sprung up under the footsteps of the sainted Ann
  • Hutchinson, as she entered the prison-door,—we shall not take upon us
  • to determine. Finding it so directly on the threshold of our
  • narrative, which is now about to issue from that inauspicious portal,
  • we could hardly do otherwise than pluck one of its flowers, and
  • present it to the reader. It may serve, let us hope, to symbolize some
  • sweet moral blossom, that may be found along the track, or relieve the
  • darkening close of a tale of human frailty and sorrow.
  • [Illustration]
  • [Illustration]
  • II.
  • THE MARKET-PLACE.
  • The grass-plot before the jail, in Prison Lane, on a certain summer
  • morning, not less than two centuries ago, was occupied by a pretty
  • large number of the inhabitants of Boston; all with their eyes
  • intently fastened on the iron-clamped oaken door. Amongst any other
  • population, or at a later period in the history of New England, the
  • grim rigidity that petrified the bearded physiognomies of these good
  • people would have augured some awful business in hand. It could have
  • betokened nothing short of the anticipated execution of some noted
  • culprit, on whom the sentence of a legal tribunal had but confirmed
  • the verdict of public sentiment. But, in that early severity of the
  • Puritan character, an inference of this kind could not so indubitably
  • be drawn. It might be that a sluggish bond-servant, or an undutiful
  • child, whom his parents had given over to the civil authority, was to
  • be corrected at the whipping-post. It might be, that an Antinomian, a
  • Quaker, or other heterodox religionist was to be scourged out of the
  • town, or an idle and vagrant Indian, whom the white man's fire-water
  • had made riotous about the streets, was to be driven with stripes into
  • the shadow of the forest. It might be, too, that a witch, like old
  • Mistress Hibbins, the bitter-tempered widow of the magistrate, was to
  • die upon the gallows. In either case, there was very much the same
  • solemnity of demeanor on the part of the spectators; as befitted a
  • people amongst whom religion and law were almost identical, and in
  • whose character both were so thoroughly interfused, that the mildest
  • and the severest acts of public discipline were alike made venerable
  • and awful. Meagre, indeed, and cold was the sympathy that a
  • transgressor might look for, from such bystanders, at the scaffold. On
  • the other hand, a penalty, which, in our days, would infer a degree of
  • mocking infamy and ridicule, might then be invested with almost as
  • stern a dignity as the punishment of death itself.
  • It was a circumstance to be noted, on the summer morning when our
  • story begins its course, that the women, of whom there were several in
  • the crowd, appeared to take a peculiar interest in whatever penal
  • infliction might be expected to ensue. The age had not so much
  • refinement, that any sense of impropriety restrained the wearers of
  • petticoat and farthingale from stepping forth into the public ways,
  • and wedging their not unsubstantial persons, if occasion were, into
  • the throng nearest to the scaffold at an execution. Morally, as well
  • as materially, there was a coarser fibre in those wives and maidens of
  • old English birth and breeding, than in their fair descendants,
  • separated from them by a series of six or seven generations; for,
  • throughout that chain of ancestry, every successive mother has
  • transmitted to her child a fainter bloom, a more delicate and briefer
  • beauty, and a slighter physical frame, if not a character of less
  • force and solidity, than her own. The women who were now standing
  • about the prison-door stood within less than half a century of the
  • period when the man-like Elizabeth had been the not altogether
  • unsuitable representative of the sex. They were her countrywomen; and
  • the beef and ale of their native land, with a moral diet not a whit
  • more refined, entered largely into their composition. The bright
  • morning sun, therefore, shone on broad shoulders and well-developed
  • busts, and on round and ruddy cheeks, that had ripened in the far-off
  • island, and had hardly yet grown paler or thinner in the atmosphere of
  • New England. There was, moreover, a boldness and rotundity of speech
  • among these matrons, as most of them seemed to be, that would startle
  • us at the present day, whether in respect to its purport or its volume
  • of tone.
  • “Goodwives,” said a hard-featured dame of fifty, “I'll tell ye a piece
  • of my mind. It would be greatly for the public behoof, if we women,
  • being of mature age and church-members in good repute, should have the
  • handling of such malefactresses as this Hester Prynne. What think ye,
  • gossips? If the hussy stood up for judgment before us five, that are
  • now here in a knot together, would she come off with such a sentence
  • as the worshipful magistrates have awarded? Marry, I trow not!”
  • “People say,” said another, “that the Reverend Master Dimmesdale, her
  • godly pastor, takes it very grievously to heart that such a scandal
  • should have come upon his congregation.”
  • “The magistrates are God-fearing gentlemen, but merciful
  • overmuch,—that is a truth,” added a third autumnal matron. “At the
  • very least, they should have put the brand of a hot iron on Hester
  • Prynne's forehead. Madam Hester would have winced at that, I warrant
  • me. But she,—the naughty baggage,—little will she care what they
  • put upon the bodice of her gown! Why, look you, she may cover it with
  • a brooch, or such like heathenish adornment, and so walk the streets
  • as brave as ever!”
  • “Ah, but,” interposed, more softly, a young wife, holding a child by
  • the hand, “let her cover the mark as she will, the pang of it will be
  • always in her heart.”
  • [Illustration: The Gossips]
  • “What do we talk of marks and brands, whether on the bodice of her
  • gown, or the flesh of her forehead?” cried another female, the ugliest
  • as well as the most pitiless of these self-constituted judges. “This
  • woman has brought shame upon us all, and ought to die. Is there not
  • law for it? Truly, there is, both in the Scripture and the
  • statute-book. Then let the magistrates, who have made it of no effect,
  • thank themselves if their own wives and daughters go astray!”
  • “Mercy on us, goodwife,” exclaimed a man in the crowd, “is there no
  • virtue in woman, save what springs from a wholesome fear of the
  • gallows? That is the hardest word yet! Hush, now, gossips! for the
  • lock is turning in the prison-door, and here comes Mistress Prynne
  • herself.”
  • The door of the jail being flung open from within, there appeared, in
  • the first place, like a black shadow emerging into sunshine, the grim
  • and grisly presence of the town-beadle, with a sword by his side, and
  • his staff of office in his hand. This personage prefigured and
  • represented in his aspect the whole dismal severity of the Puritanic
  • code of law, which it was his business to administer in its final and
  • closest application to the offender. Stretching forth the official
  • staff in his left hand, he laid his right upon the shoulder of a young
  • woman, whom he thus drew forward; until, on the threshold of the
  • prison-door, she repelled him, by an action marked with natural
  • dignity and force of character, and stepped into the open air, as if
  • by her own free will. She bore in her arms a child, a baby of some
  • three months old, who winked and turned aside its little face from the
  • too vivid light of day; because its existence, heretofore, had brought
  • it acquainted only with the gray twilight of a dungeon, or other
  • darksome apartment of the prison.
  • When the young woman—the mother of this child—stood fully revealed
  • before the crowd, it seemed to be her first impulse to clasp the
  • infant closely to her bosom; not so much by an impulse of motherly
  • affection, as that she might thereby conceal a certain token, which
  • was wrought or fastened into her dress. In a moment, however, wisely
  • judging that one token of her shame would but poorly serve to hide
  • another, she took the baby on her arm, and, with a burning blush, and
  • yet a haughty smile, and a glance that would not be abashed, looked
  • around at her towns-people and neighbors. On the breast of her gown,
  • in fine red cloth, surrounded with an elaborate embroidery and
  • fantastic flourishes of gold-thread, appeared the letter A. It was so
  • artistically done, and with so much fertility and gorgeous luxuriance
  • of fancy, that it had all the effect of a last and fitting decoration
  • to the apparel which she wore; and which was of a splendor in
  • accordance with the taste of the age, but greatly beyond what was
  • allowed by the sumptuary regulations of the colony.
  • The young woman was tall, with a figure of perfect elegance on a large
  • scale. She had dark and abundant hair, so glossy that it threw off the
  • sunshine with a gleam, and a face which, besides being beautiful from
  • regularity of feature and richness of complexion, had the
  • impressiveness belonging to a marked brow and deep black eyes. She was
  • lady-like, too, after the manner of the feminine gentility of those
  • days; characterized by a certain state and dignity, rather than by the
  • delicate, evanescent, and indescribable grace, which is now recognized
  • as its indication. And never had Hester Prynne appeared more
  • lady-like, in the antique interpretation of the term, than as she
  • issued from the prison. Those who had before known her, and had
  • expected to behold her dimmed and obscured by a disastrous cloud, were
  • astonished, and even startled, to perceive how her beauty shone out,
  • and made a halo of the misfortune and ignominy in which she was
  • enveloped. It may be true, that, to a sensitive observer, there was
  • something exquisitely painful in it. Her attire, which, indeed, she
  • had wrought for the occasion, in prison, and had modelled much after
  • her own fancy, seemed to express the attitude of her spirit, the
  • desperate recklessness of her mood, by its wild and picturesque
  • peculiarity. But the point which drew all eyes, and, as it were,
  • transfigured the wearer,—so that both men and women, who had been
  • familiarly acquainted with Hester Prynne, were now impressed as if
  • they beheld her for the first time,—was that SCARLET LETTER, so
  • fantastically embroidered and illuminated upon her bosom. It had the
  • effect of a spell, taking her out of the ordinary relations with
  • humanity, and enclosing her in a sphere by herself.
  • “She hath good skill at her needle, that's certain,” remarked one of
  • her female spectators; “but did ever a woman, before this brazen
  • hussy, contrive such a way of showing it! Why, gossips, what is it but
  • to laugh in the faces of our godly magistrates, and make a pride out
  • of what they, worthy gentlemen, meant for a punishment?”
  • “It were well,” muttered the most iron-visaged of the old dames, “if
  • we stripped Madam Hester's rich gown off her dainty shoulders; and as
  • for the red letter, which she hath stitched so curiously, I'll bestow
  • a rag of mine own rheumatic flannel, to make a fitter one!”
  • “O, peace, neighbors, peace!” whispered their youngest companion; “do
  • not let her hear you! Not a stitch in that embroidered letter but she
  • has felt it in her heart.”
  • The grim beadle now made a gesture with his staff.
  • “Make way, good people, make way, in the King's name!” cried he. “Open
  • a passage; and, I promise ye, Mistress Prynne shall be set where man,
  • woman, and child may have a fair sight of her brave apparel, from this
  • time till an hour past meridian. A blessing on the righteous Colony of
  • the Massachusetts, where iniquity is dragged out into the sunshine!
  • Come along, Madam Hester, and show your scarlet letter in the
  • market-place!”
  • A lane was forthwith opened through the crowd of spectators. Preceded
  • by the beadle, and attended by an irregular procession of
  • stern-browed men and unkindly visaged women, Hester Prynne set forth
  • towards the place appointed for her punishment. A crowd of eager and
  • curious school-boys, understanding little of the matter in hand,
  • except that it gave them a half-holiday, ran before her progress,
  • turning their heads continually to stare into her face, and at the
  • winking baby in her arms, and at the ignominious letter on her breast.
  • It was no great distance, in those days, from the prison-door to the
  • market-place. Measured by the prisoner's experience, however, it might
  • be reckoned a journey of some length; for, haughty as her demeanor
  • was, she perchance underwent an agony from every footstep of those
  • that thronged to see her, as if her heart had been flung into the
  • street for them all to spurn and trample upon. In our nature, however,
  • there is a provision, alike marvellous and merciful, that the sufferer
  • should never know the intensity of what he endures by its present
  • torture, but chiefly by the pang that rankles after it. With almost a
  • serene deportment, therefore, Hester Prynne passed through this
  • portion of her ordeal, and came to a sort of scaffold, at the western
  • extremity of the market-place. It stood nearly beneath the eaves of
  • Boston's earliest church, and appeared to be a fixture there.
  • In fact, this scaffold constituted a portion of a penal machine, which
  • now, for two or three generations past, has been merely historical and
  • traditionary among us, but was held, in the old time, to be as
  • effectual an agent, in the promotion of good citizenship, as ever was
  • the guillotine among the terrorists of France. It was, in short, the
  • platform of the pillory; and above it rose the framework of that
  • instrument of discipline, so fashioned as to confine the human head in
  • its tight grasp, and thus hold it up to the public gaze. The very
  • ideal of ignominy was embodied and made manifest in this contrivance
  • of wood and iron. There can be no outrage, methinks, against our
  • common nature,—whatever be the delinquencies of the individual,—no
  • outrage more flagrant than to forbid the culprit to hide his face for
  • shame; as it was the essence of this punishment to do. In Hester
  • Prynne's instance, however, as not unfrequently in other cases, her
  • sentence bore, that she should stand a certain time upon the platform,
  • but without undergoing that gripe about the neck and confinement of
  • the head, the proneness to which was the most devilish characteristic
  • of this ugly engine. Knowing well her part, she ascended a flight of
  • wooden steps, and was thus displayed to the surrounding multitude, at
  • about the height of a man's shoulders above the street.
  • Had there been a Papist among the crowd of Puritans, he might have
  • seen in this beautiful woman, so picturesque in her attire and mien,
  • and with the infant at her bosom, an object to remind him of the image
  • of Divine Maternity, which so many illustrious painters have vied with
  • one another to represent; something which should remind him, indeed,
  • but only by contrast, of that sacred image of sinless motherhood,
  • whose infant was to redeem the world. Here, there was the taint of
  • deepest sin in the most sacred quality of human life, working such
  • effect, that the world was only the darker for this woman's beauty,
  • and the more lost for the infant that she had borne.
  • The scene was not without a mixture of awe, such as must always invest
  • the spectacle of guilt and shame in a fellow-creature, before society
  • shall have grown corrupt enough to smile, instead of shuddering, at
  • it. The witnesses of Hester Prynne's disgrace had not yet passed
  • beyond their simplicity. They were stern enough to look upon her
  • death, had that been the sentence, without a murmur at its severity,
  • but had none of the heartlessness of another social state, which would
  • find only a theme for jest in an exhibition like the present. Even had
  • there been a disposition to turn the matter into ridicule, it must
  • have been repressed and overpowered by the solemn presence of men no
  • less dignified than the Governor, and several of his counsellors, a
  • judge, a general, and the ministers of the town; all of whom sat or
  • stood in a balcony of the meeting-house, looking down upon the
  • platform. When such personages could constitute a part of the
  • spectacle, without risking the majesty or reverence of rank and
  • office, it was safely to be inferred that the infliction of a legal
  • sentence would have an earnest and effectual meaning. Accordingly, the
  • crowd was sombre and grave. The unhappy culprit sustained herself as
  • best a woman might, under the heavy weight of a thousand unrelenting
  • eyes, all fastened upon her, and concentrated at her bosom. It was
  • almost intolerable to be borne. Of an impulsive and passionate nature,
  • she had fortified herself to encounter the stings and venomous stabs
  • of public contumely, wreaking itself in every variety of insult; but
  • there was a quality so much more terrible in the solemn mood of the
  • popular mind, that she longed rather to behold all those rigid
  • countenances contorted with scornful merriment, and herself the
  • object. Had a roar of laughter burst from the multitude,—each man,
  • each woman, each little shrill-voiced child, contributing their
  • individual parts,—Hester Prynne might have repaid them all with a
  • bitter and disdainful smile. But, under the leaden infliction which it
  • was her doom to endure, she felt, at moments, as if she must needs
  • shriek out with the full power of her lungs, and cast herself from the
  • scaffold down upon the ground, or else go mad at once.
  • Yet there were intervals when the whole scene, in which she was the
  • most conspicuous object, seemed to vanish from her eyes, or, at least,
  • glimmered indistinctly before them, like a mass of imperfectly shaped
  • and spectral images. Her mind, and especially her memory, was
  • preternaturally active, and kept bringing up other scenes than this
  • roughly hewn street of a little town, on the edge of the Western
  • wilderness; other faces than were lowering upon her from beneath the
  • brims of those steeple-crowned hats. Reminiscences the most trifling
  • and immaterial, passages of infancy and school-days, sports, childish
  • quarrels, and the little domestic traits of her maiden years, came
  • swarming back upon her, intermingled with recollections of whatever
  • was gravest in her subsequent life; one picture precisely as vivid as
  • another; as if all were of similar importance, or all alike a play.
  • Possibly, it was an instinctive device of her spirit, to relieve
  • itself, by the exhibition of these phantasmagoric forms, from the
  • cruel weight and hardness of the reality.
  • Be that as it might, the scaffold of the pillory was a point of view
  • that revealed to Hester Prynne the entire track along which she had
  • been treading, since her happy infancy. Standing on that miserable
  • eminence, she saw again her native village, in Old England, and her
  • paternal home; a decayed house of gray stone, with a poverty-stricken
  • aspect, but retaining a half-obliterated shield of arms over the
  • portal, in token of antique gentility. She saw her father's face, with
  • its bald brow, and reverend white beard, that flowed over the
  • old-fashioned Elizabethan ruff; her mother's, too, with the look of
  • heedful and anxious love which it always wore in her remembrance, and
  • which, even since her death, had so often laid the impediment of a
  • gentle remonstrance in her daughter's pathway. She saw her own
  • face, glowing with girlish beauty, and illuminating all the interior
  • of the dusky mirror in which she had been wont to gaze at it. There
  • she beheld another countenance, of a man well stricken in years, a
  • pale, thin, scholar-like visage, with eyes dim and bleared by the
  • lamplight that had served them to pore over many ponderous books. Yet
  • those same bleared optics had a strange, penetrating power, when it
  • was their owner's purpose to read the human soul. This figure of the
  • study and the cloister, as Hester Prynne's womanly fancy failed not to
  • recall, was slightly deformed, with the left shoulder a trifle higher
  • than the right. Next rose before her, in memory's picture-gallery, the
  • intricate and narrow thoroughfares, the tall, gray houses, the huge
  • cathedrals, and the public edifices, ancient in date and quaint in
  • architecture, of a Continental city; where a new life had awaited her,
  • still in connection with the misshapen scholar; a new life, but
  • feeding itself on time-worn materials, like a tuft of green moss on a
  • crumbling wall. Lastly, in lieu of these shifting scenes, came back
  • the rude market-place of the Puritan settlement, with all the
  • towns-people assembled and levelling their stern regards at Hester
  • Prynne,—yes, at herself,—who stood on the scaffold of the pillory,
  • an infant on her arm, and the letter A, in scarlet, fantastically
  • embroidered with gold-thread, upon her bosom!
  • [Illustration: “Standing on the Miserable Eminence”]
  • Could it be true? She clutched the child so fiercely to her breast,
  • that it sent forth a cry; she turned her eyes downward at the scarlet
  • letter, and even touched it with her finger, to assure herself that
  • the infant and the shame were real. Yes!—these were her
  • realities,—all else had vanished!
  • [Illustration]
  • III.
  • THE RECOGNITION.
  • From this intense consciousness of being the object of severe and
  • universal observation, the wearer of the scarlet letter was at length
  • relieved, by discerning, on the outskirts of the crowd, a figure which
  • irresistibly took possession of her thoughts. An Indian, in his native
  • garb, was standing there; but the red men were not so infrequent
  • visitors of the English settlements, that one of them would have
  • attracted any notice from Hester Prynne, at such a time; much less
  • would he have excluded all other objects and ideas from her mind. By
  • the Indian's side, and evidently sustaining a companionship with him,
  • stood a white man, clad in a strange disarray of civilized and savage
  • costume.
  • He was small in stature, with a furrowed visage, which, as yet, could
  • hardly be termed aged. There was a remarkable intelligence in his
  • features, as of a person who had so cultivated his mental part that it
  • could not fail to mould the physical to itself, and become manifest by
  • unmistakable tokens. Although, by a seemingly careless arrangement of
  • his heterogeneous garb, he had endeavored to conceal or abate the
  • peculiarity, it was sufficiently evident to Hester Prynne, that one of
  • this man's shoulders rose higher than the other. Again, at the first
  • instant of perceiving that thin visage, and the slight deformity of
  • the figure, she pressed her infant to her bosom with so convulsive a
  • force that the poor babe uttered another cry of pain. But the mother
  • did not seem to hear it.
  • At his arrival in the market-place, and some time before she saw him,
  • the stranger had bent his eyes on Hester Prynne. It was carelessly, at
  • first, like a man chiefly accustomed to look inward, and to whom
  • external matters are of little value and import, unless they bear
  • relation to something within his mind. Very soon, however, his look
  • became keen and penetrative. A writhing horror twisted itself across
  • his features, like a snake gliding swiftly over them, and making one
  • little pause, with all its wreathed intervolutions in open sight. His
  • face darkened with some powerful emotion, which, nevertheless, he so
  • instantaneously controlled by an effort of his will, that, save at a
  • single moment, its expression might have passed for calmness. After a
  • brief space, the convulsion grew almost imperceptible, and finally
  • subsided into the depths of his nature. When he found the eyes of
  • Hester Prynne fastened on his own, and saw that she appeared to
  • recognize him, he slowly and calmly raised his finger, made a gesture
  • with it in the air, and laid it on his lips.
  • Then, touching the shoulder of a townsman who stood next to him, he
  • addressed him, in a formal and courteous manner.
  • “I pray you, good Sir,” said he, “who is this woman?—and wherefore is
  • she here set up to public shame?”
  • “You must needs be a stranger in this region, friend,” answered the
  • townsman, looking curiously at the questioner and his savage
  • companion, “else you would surely have heard of Mistress Hester
  • Prynne, and her evil doings. She hath raised a great scandal, I
  • promise you, in godly Master Dimmesdale's church.”
  • “You say truly,” replied the other. “I am a stranger, and have been a
  • wanderer, sorely against my will. I have met with grievous mishaps by
  • sea and land, and have been long held in bonds among the heathen-folk,
  • to the southward; and am now brought hither by this Indian, to be
  • redeemed out of my captivity. Will it please you, therefore, to tell
  • me of Hester Prynne's,—have I her name rightly?—of this woman's
  • offences, and what has brought her to yonder scaffold?”
  • “Truly, friend; and methinks it must gladden your heart, after your
  • troubles and sojourn in the wilderness,” said the townsman, “to find
  • yourself, at length, in a land where iniquity is searched out, and
  • punished in the sight of rulers and people; as here in our godly New
  • England. Yonder woman, Sir, you must know, was the wife of a certain
  • learned man, English by birth, but who had long dwelt in Amsterdam,
  • whence, some good time agone, he was minded to cross over and cast in
  • his lot with us of the Massachusetts. To this purpose, he sent his
  • wife before him, remaining himself to look after some necessary
  • affairs. Marry, good Sir, in some two years, or less, that the woman
  • has been a dweller here in Boston, no tidings have come of this
  • learned gentleman, Master Prynne; and his young wife, look you, being
  • left to her own misguidance—”
  • “Ah!—aha!—I conceive you,” said the stranger, with a bitter smile.
  • “So learned a man as you speak of should have learned this too in his
  • books. And who, by your favor, Sir, may be the father of yonder
  • babe—it is some three or four months old, I should judge—which
  • Mistress Prynne is holding in her arms?”
  • “Of a truth, friend, that matter remaineth a riddle; and the Daniel
  • who shall expound it is yet a-wanting,” answered the townsman. “Madam
  • Hester absolutely refuseth to speak, and the magistrates have laid
  • their heads together in vain. Peradventure the guilty one stands
  • looking on at this sad spectacle, unknown of man, and forgetting that
  • God sees him.”
  • “The learned man,” observed the stranger, with another smile, “should
  • come himself, to look into the mystery.”
  • “It behooves him well, if he be still in life,” responded the
  • townsman. “Now, good Sir, our Massachusetts magistracy, bethinking
  • themselves that this woman is youthful and fair, and doubtless was
  • strongly tempted to her fall,—and that, moreover, as is most likely,
  • her husband may be at the bottom of the sea,—they have not been bold
  • to put in force the extremity of our righteous law against her. The
  • penalty thereof is death. But in their great mercy and tenderness of
  • heart, they have doomed Mistress Prynne to stand only a space of three
  • hours on the platform of the pillory, and then and thereafter, for the
  • remainder of her natural life, to wear a mark of shame upon her
  • bosom.”
  • “A wise sentence!” remarked the stranger, gravely bowing his head.
  • “Thus she will be a living sermon against sin, until the ignominious
  • letter be engraved upon her tombstone. It irks me, nevertheless, that
  • the partner of her iniquity should not, at least, stand on the
  • scaffold by her side. But he will be known!—he will be known!—he
  • will be known!”
  • He bowed courteously to the communicative townsman, and, whispering a
  • few words to his Indian attendant, they both made their way through
  • the crowd.
  • While this passed, Hester Prynne had been standing on her pedestal,
  • still with a fixed gaze towards the stranger; so fixed a gaze, that,
  • at moments of intense absorption, all other objects in the visible
  • world seemed to vanish, leaving only him and her. Such an interview,
  • perhaps, would have been more terrible than even to meet him as she
  • now did, with the hot, mid-day sun burning down upon her face, and
  • lighting up its shame; with the scarlet token of infamy on her breast;
  • with the sin-born infant in her arms; with a whole people, drawn forth
  • as to a festival, staring at the features that should have been seen
  • only in the quiet gleam of the fireside, in the happy shadow of a
  • home, or beneath a matronly veil, at church. Dreadful as it was, she
  • was conscious of a shelter in the presence of these thousand
  • witnesses. It was better to stand thus, with so many betwixt him and
  • her, than to greet him, face to face, they two alone. She fled for
  • refuge, as it were, to the public exposure, and dreaded the moment
  • when its protection should be withdrawn from her. Involved in these
  • thoughts, she scarcely heard a voice behind her, until it had repeated
  • her name more than once, in a loud and solemn tone, audible to the
  • whole multitude.
  • “Hearken unto me, Hester Prynne!” said the voice.
  • It has already been noticed, that directly over the platform on which
  • Hester Prynne stood was a kind of balcony, or open gallery, appended
  • to the meeting-house. It was the place whence proclamations were wont
  • to be made, amidst an assemblage of the magistracy, with all the
  • ceremonial that attended such public observances in those days. Here,
  • to witness the scene which we are describing, sat Governor Bellingham
  • himself, with four sergeants about his chair, bearing halberds, as a
  • guard of honor. He wore a dark feather in his hat, a border of
  • embroidery on his cloak, and a black velvet tunic beneath; a
  • gentleman advanced in years, with a hard experience written in his
  • wrinkles. He was not ill fitted to be the head and representative of a
  • community, which owed its origin and progress, and its present state
  • of development, not to the impulses of youth, but to the stern and
  • tempered energies of manhood, and the sombre sagacity of age;
  • accomplishing so much, precisely because it imagined and hoped so
  • little. The other eminent characters, by whom the chief ruler was
  • surrounded, were distinguished by a dignity of mien, belonging to a
  • period when the forms of authority were felt to possess the sacredness
  • of Divine institutions. They were, doubtless, good men, just and sage.
  • But, out of the whole human family, it would not have been easy to
  • select the same number of wise and virtuous persons, who should be
  • less capable of sitting in judgment on an erring woman's heart, and
  • disentangling its mesh of good and evil, than the sages of rigid
  • aspect towards whom Hester Prynne now turned her face. She seemed
  • conscious, indeed, that whatever sympathy she might expect lay in the
  • larger and warmer heart of the multitude; for, as she lifted her eyes
  • towards the balcony, the unhappy woman grew pale and trembled.
  • The voice which had called her attention was that of the reverend and
  • famous John Wilson, the eldest clergyman of Boston, a great scholar,
  • like most of his contemporaries in the profession, and withal a man of
  • kind and genial spirit. This last attribute, however, had been less
  • carefully developed than his intellectual gifts, and was, in truth,
  • rather a matter of shame than self-congratulation with him. There he
  • stood, with a border of grizzled locks beneath his skull-cap; while
  • his gray eyes, accustomed to the shaded light of his study, were
  • winking, like those of Hester's infant, in the unadulterated
  • sunshine. He looked like the darkly engraved portraits which we see
  • prefixed to old volumes of sermons; and had no more right than one of
  • those portraits would have, to step forth, as he now did, and meddle
  • with a question of human guilt, passion, and anguish.
  • “Hester Prynne,” said the clergyman, “I have striven with my young
  • brother here, under whose preaching of the word you have been
  • privileged to sit,”—here Mr. Wilson laid his hand on the shoulder of
  • a pale young man beside him,—“I have sought, I say, to persuade this
  • godly youth, that he should deal with you, here in the face of Heaven,
  • and before these wise and upright rulers, and in hearing of all the
  • people, as touching the vileness and blackness of your sin. Knowing
  • your natural temper better than I, he could the better judge what
  • arguments to use, whether of tenderness or terror, such as might
  • prevail over your hardness and obstinacy; insomuch that you should no
  • longer hide the name of him who tempted you to this grievous fall. But
  • he opposes to me (with a young man's over-softness, albeit wise beyond
  • his years), that it were wronging the very nature of woman to force
  • her to lay open her heart's secrets in such broad daylight, and in
  • presence of so great a multitude. Truly, as I sought to convince him,
  • the shame lay in the commission of the sin, and not in the showing of
  • it forth. What say you to it, once again, Brother Dimmesdale? Must it
  • be thou, or I, that shall deal with this poor sinner's soul?”
  • There was a murmur among the dignified and reverend occupants of the
  • balcony; and Governor Bellingham gave expression to its purport,
  • speaking in an authoritative voice, although tempered with respect
  • towards the youthful clergyman whom he addressed.
  • “Good Master Dimmesdale,” said he, “the responsibility of this woman's
  • soul lies greatly with you. It behooves you, therefore, to exhort her
  • to repentance, and to confession, as a proof and consequence thereof.”
  • The directness of this appeal drew the eyes of the whole crowd upon
  • the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale; a young clergyman, who had come from one
  • of the great English universities, bringing all the learning of the
  • age into our wild forest-land. His eloquence and religious fervor had
  • already given the earnest of high eminence in his profession. He was a
  • person of very striking aspect, with a white, lofty, and impending
  • brow, large brown, melancholy eyes, and a mouth which, unless when he
  • forcibly compressed it, was apt to be tremulous, expressing both
  • nervous sensibility and a vast power of self-restraint.
  • Notwithstanding his high native gifts and scholar-like attainments,
  • there was an air about this young minister,—an apprehensive, a
  • startled, a half-frightened look,—as of a being who felt himself
  • quite astray and at a loss in the pathway of human existence, and
  • could only be at ease in some seclusion of his own. Therefore, so far
  • as his duties would permit, he trod in the shadowy by-paths, and thus
  • kept himself simple and childlike; coming forth, when occasion was,
  • with a freshness, and fragrance, and dewy purity of thought, which, as
  • many people said, affected them like the speech of an angel.
  • Such was the young man whom the Reverend Mr. Wilson and the Governor
  • had introduced so openly to the public notice, bidding him speak, in
  • the hearing of all men, to that mystery of a woman's soul, so sacred
  • even in its pollution. The trying nature of his position drove the
  • blood from his cheek, and made his lips tremulous.
  • “Speak to the woman, my brother,” said Mr. Wilson. “It is of moment to
  • her soul, and therefore, as the worshipful Governor says, momentous to
  • thine own, in whose charge hers is. Exhort her to confess the truth!”
  • The Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale bent his head, in silent prayer, as it
  • seemed, and then came forward.
  • “Hester Prynne,” said he, leaning over the balcony and looking down
  • steadfastly into her eyes, “thou hearest what this good man says, and
  • seest the accountability under which I labor. If thou feelest it to be
  • for thy soul's peace, and that thy earthly punishment will thereby be
  • made more effectual to salvation, I charge thee to speak out the name
  • of thy fellow-sinner and fellow-sufferer! Be not silent from any
  • mistaken pity and tenderness for him; for, believe me, Hester, though
  • he were to step down from a high place, and stand there beside thee,
  • on thy pedestal of shame, yet better were it so than to hide a guilty
  • heart through life. What can thy silence do for him, except it tempt
  • him—yea, compel him, as it were—to add hypocrisy to sin? Heaven hath
  • granted thee an open ignominy, that thereby thou mayest work out an
  • open triumph over the evil within thee, and the sorrow without. Take
  • heed how thou deniest to him—who, perchance, hath not the courage to
  • grasp it for himself—the bitter, but wholesome, cup that is now
  • presented to thy lips!”
  • The young pastor's voice was tremulously sweet, rich, deep, and
  • broken. The feeling that it so evidently manifested, rather than the
  • direct purport of the words, caused it to vibrate within all hearts,
  • and brought the listeners into one accord of sympathy. Even the poor
  • baby, at Hester's bosom, was affected by the same influence; for it
  • directed its hitherto vacant gaze towards Mr. Dimmesdale, and held up
  • its little arms, with a half-pleased, half-plaintive murmur. So
  • powerful seemed the minister's appeal, that the people could not
  • believe but that Hester Prynne would speak out the guilty name; or
  • else that the guilty one himself, in whatever high or lowly place he
  • stood, would be drawn forth by an inward and inevitable necessity, and
  • compelled to ascend to the scaffold.
  • Hester shook her head.
  • “Woman, transgress not beyond the limits of Heaven's mercy!” cried the
  • Reverend Mr. Wilson, more harshly than before. “That little babe hath
  • been gifted with a voice, to second and confirm the counsel which thou
  • hast heard. Speak out the name! That, and thy repentance, may avail to
  • take the scarlet letter off thy breast.”
  • “Never!” replied Hester Prynne, looking, not at Mr. Wilson, but into
  • the deep and troubled eyes of the younger clergyman. “It is too deeply
  • branded. Ye cannot take it off. And would that I might endure his
  • agony, as well as mine!”
  • “Speak, woman!” said another voice, coldly and sternly, proceeding
  • from the crowd about the scaffold. “Speak; and give your child a
  • father!”
  • “I will not speak!” answered Hester, turning pale as death, but
  • responding to this voice, which she too surely recognized. “And my
  • child must seek a heavenly Father; she shall never know an earthly
  • one!”
  • “She will not speak!” murmured Mr. Dimmesdale, who, leaning over the
  • balcony, with his hand upon his heart, had awaited the result of his
  • appeal. He now drew back, with a long respiration. “Wondrous strength
  • and generosity of a woman's heart! She will not speak!”
  • [Illustration: “She was led back to Prison”]
  • Discerning the impracticable state of the poor culprit's mind, the
  • elder clergyman, who had carefully prepared himself for the occasion,
  • addressed to the multitude a discourse on sin, in all its branches,
  • but with continual reference to the ignominious letter. So forcibly
  • did he dwell upon this symbol, for the hour or more during which his
  • periods were rolling over the people's heads, that it assumed new
  • terrors in their imagination, and seemed to derive its scarlet hue
  • from the flames of the infernal pit. Hester Prynne, meanwhile, kept
  • her place upon the pedestal of shame, with glazed eyes, and an air of
  • weary indifference. She had borne, that morning, all that nature could
  • endure; and as her temperament was not of the order that escapes from
  • too intense suffering by a swoon, her spirit could only shelter itself
  • beneath a stony crust of insensibility, while the faculties of animal
  • life remained entire. In this state, the voice of the preacher
  • thundered remorselessly, but unavailingly, upon her ears. The infant,
  • during the latter portion of her ordeal, pierced the air with its
  • wailings and screams; she strove to hush it, mechanically, but seemed
  • scarcely to sympathize with its trouble. With the same hard demeanor,
  • she was led back to prison, and vanished from the public gaze within
  • its iron-clamped portal. It was whispered, by those who peered after
  • her, that the scarlet letter threw a lurid gleam along the dark
  • passage-way of the interior.
  • [Illustration]
  • [Illustration]
  • IV.
  • THE INTERVIEW.
  • After her return to the prison, Hester Prynne was found to be in a
  • state of nervous excitement that demanded constant watchfulness, lest
  • she should perpetrate violence on herself, or do some half-frenzied
  • mischief to the poor babe. As night approached, it proving impossible
  • to quell her insubordination by rebuke or threats of punishment,
  • Master Brackett, the jailer, thought fit to introduce a physician. He
  • described him as a man of skill in all Christian modes of physical
  • science, and likewise familiar with whatever the savage people could
  • teach, in respect to medicinal herbs and roots that grew in the
  • forest. To say the truth, there was much need of professional
  • assistance, not merely for Hester herself, but still more urgently for
  • the child; who, drawing its sustenance from the maternal bosom, seemed
  • to have drank in with it all the turmoil, the anguish and despair,
  • which pervaded the mother's system. It now writhed in convulsions of
  • pain, and was a forcible type, in its little frame, of the moral agony
  • which Hester Prynne had borne throughout the day.
  • Closely following the jailer into the dismal apartment appeared that
  • individual, of singular aspect, whose presence in the crowd had been
  • of such deep interest to the wearer of the scarlet letter. He was
  • lodged in the prison, not as suspected of any offence, but as the most
  • convenient and suitable mode of disposing of him, until the
  • magistrates should have conferred with the Indian sagamores respecting
  • his ransom. His name was announced as Roger Chillingworth. The jailer,
  • after ushering him into the room, remained a moment, marvelling at the
  • comparative quiet that followed his entrance; for Hester Prynne had
  • immediately become as still as death, although the child continued to
  • moan.
  • “Prithee, friend, leave me alone with my patient,” said the
  • practitioner. “Trust me, good jailer, you shall briefly have peace in
  • your house; and, I promise you, Mistress Prynne shall hereafter be
  • more amenable to just authority than you may have found her
  • heretofore.”
  • “Nay, if your worship can accomplish that,” answered Master Brackett,
  • “I shall own you for a man of skill indeed! Verily, the woman hath
  • been like a possessed one; and there lacks little, that I should take
  • in hand to drive Satan out of her with stripes.”
  • The stranger had entered the room with the characteristic quietude of
  • the profession to which he announced himself as belonging. Nor did his
  • demeanor change, when the withdrawal of the prison-keeper left him
  • face to face with the woman, whose absorbed notice of him, in the
  • crowd, had intimated so close a relation between himself and her. His
  • first care was given to the child; whose cries, indeed, as she lay
  • writhing on the trundle-bed, made it of peremptory necessity to
  • postpone all other business to the task of soothing her. He examined
  • the infant carefully, and then proceeded to unclasp a leathern case,
  • which he took from beneath his dress. It appeared to contain medical
  • preparations, one of which he mingled with a cup of water.
  • “My old studies in alchemy,” observed he, “and my sojourn, for above a
  • year past, among a people well versed in the kindly properties of
  • simples, have made a better physician of me than many that claim the
  • medical degree. Here, woman! The child is yours,—she is none of
  • mine,—neither will she recognize my voice or aspect as a father's.
  • Administer this draught, therefore, with thine own hand.”
  • Hester repelled the offered medicine, at the same time gazing with
  • strongly marked apprehension into his face.
  • “Wouldst thou avenge thyself on the innocent babe?” whispered she.
  • “Foolish woman!” responded the physician, half coldly, half
  • soothingly. “What should ail me, to harm this misbegotten and
  • miserable babe? The medicine is potent for good; and were it my
  • child,—yea, mine own, as well as thine!—I could do no better for
  • it.”
  • As she still hesitated, being, in fact, in no reasonable state of
  • mind, he took the infant in his arms, and himself administered the
  • draught. It soon proved its efficacy, and redeemed the leech's pledge.
  • The moans of the little patient subsided; its convulsive tossings
  • gradually ceased; and, in a few moments, as is the custom of young
  • children after relief from pain, it sank into a profound and dewy
  • slumber. The physician, as he had a fair right to be termed, next
  • bestowed his attention on the mother. With calm and intent scrutiny he
  • felt her pulse, looked into her eyes,—a gaze that made her heart
  • shrink and shudder, because so familiar, and yet so strange and
  • cold,—and, finally, satisfied with his investigation, proceeded to
  • mingle another draught.
  • “I know not Lethe nor Nepenthe,” remarked he; “but I have learned many
  • new secrets in the wilderness, and here is one of them,—a recipe that
  • an Indian taught me, in requital of some lessons of my own, that were
  • as old as Paracelsus. Drink it! It may be less soothing than a sinless
  • conscience. That I cannot give thee. But it will calm the swell and
  • heaving of thy passion, like oil thrown on the waves of a tempestuous
  • sea.”
  • He presented the cup to Hester, who received it with a slow, earnest
  • look into his face; not precisely a look of fear, yet full of doubt
  • and questioning, as to what his purposes might be. She looked also at
  • her slumbering child.
  • “I have thought of death,” said she,—“have wished for it,—would even
  • have prayed for it, were it fit that such as I should pray for
  • anything. Yet if death be in this cup, I bid thee think again, ere
  • thou beholdest me quaff it. See! It is even now at my lips.”
  • “Drink, then,” replied he, still with the same cold composure. “Dost
  • thou know me so little, Hester Prynne? Are my purposes wont to be so
  • shallow? Even if I imagine a scheme of vengeance, what could I do
  • better for my object than to let thee live,—than to give thee
  • medicines against all harm and peril of life,—so that this burning
  • shame may still blaze upon thy bosom?” As he spoke, he laid his long
  • forefinger on the scarlet letter, which forthwith seemed to scorch
  • into Hester's breast, as if it had been red-hot. He noticed her
  • involuntary gesture, and smiled. “Live, therefore, and bear about thy
  • doom with thee, in the eyes of men and women,—in the eyes of him whom
  • thou didst call thy husband,—in the eyes of yonder child! And, that
  • thou mayest live, take off this draught.”
  • Without further expostulation or delay, Hester Prynne drained the
  • cup, and, at the motion of the man of skill, seated herself on the bed
  • where the child was sleeping; while he drew the only chair which the
  • room afforded, and took his own seat beside her. She could not but
  • tremble at these preparations; for she felt that—having now done all
  • that humanity or principle, or, if so it were, a refined cruelty,
  • impelled him to do, for the relief of physical suffering—he was next
  • to treat with her as the man whom she had most deeply and irreparably
  • injured.
  • “Hester,” said he, “I ask not wherefore, nor how, thou hast fallen
  • into the pit, or say, rather, thou hast ascended to the pedestal of
  • infamy, on which I found thee. The reason is not far to seek. It was
  • my folly, and thy weakness. I,—a man of thought,—the bookworm of
  • great libraries,—a man already in decay, having given my best years
  • to feed the hungry dream of knowledge,—what had I to do with youth
  • and beauty like thine own! Misshapen from my birth-hour, how could I
  • delude myself with the idea that intellectual gifts might veil
  • physical deformity in a young girl's fantasy! Men call me wise. If
  • sages were ever wise in their own behoof, I might have foreseen all
  • this. I might have known that, as I came out of the vast and dismal
  • forest, and entered this settlement of Christian men, the very first
  • object to meet my eyes would be thyself, Hester Prynne, standing up, a
  • statue of ignominy, before the people. Nay, from the moment when we
  • came down the old church steps together, a married pair, I might have
  • beheld the bale-fire of that scarlet letter blazing at the end of our
  • path!”
  • “Thou knowest,” said Hester,—for, depressed as she was, she could not
  • endure this last quiet stab at the token of her shame,—“thou knowest
  • that I was frank with thee. I felt no love, nor feigned any.”
  • “True,” replied he. “It was my folly! I have said it. But, up to that
  • epoch of my life, I had lived in vain. The world had been so
  • cheerless! My heart was a habitation large enough for many guests, but
  • lonely and chill, and without a household fire. I longed to kindle
  • one! It seemed not so wild a dream,—old as I was, and sombre as I
  • was, and misshapen as I was,—that the simple bliss, which is
  • scattered far and wide, for all mankind to gather up, might yet be
  • mine. And so, Hester, I drew thee into my heart, into its innermost
  • chamber, and sought to warm thee by the warmth which thy presence made
  • there!”
  • “I have greatly wronged thee,” murmured Hester.
  • “We have wronged each other,” answered he. “Mine was the first wrong,
  • when I betrayed thy budding youth into a false and unnatural relation
  • with my decay. Therefore, as a man who has not thought and
  • philosophized in vain, I seek no vengeance, plot no evil against thee.
  • Between thee and me the scale hangs fairly balanced. But, Hester, the
  • man lives who has wronged us both! Who is he?”
  • “Ask me not!” replied Hester Prynne, looking firmly into his face.
  • “That thou shalt never know!”
  • “Never, sayest thou?” rejoined he, with a smile of dark and
  • self-relying intelligence. “Never know him! Believe me, Hester, there
  • are few things,—whether in the outward world, or, to a certain depth,
  • in the invisible sphere of thought,—few things hidden from the man
  • who devotes himself earnestly and unreservedly to the solution of a
  • mystery. Thou mayest cover up thy secret from the prying multitude.
  • Thou mayest conceal it, too, from the ministers and magistrates, even
  • as thou didst this day, when they sought to wrench the name out of thy
  • heart, and give thee a partner on thy pedestal. But, as for me, I come
  • to the inquest with other senses than they possess. I shall seek this
  • man, as I have sought truth in books; as I have sought gold in
  • alchemy. There is a sympathy that will make me conscious of him. I
  • shall see him tremble. I shall feel myself shudder, suddenly and
  • unawares. Sooner or later, he must needs be mine!”
  • The eyes of the wrinkled scholar glowed so intensely upon her, that
  • Hester Prynne clasped her hands over her heart, dreading lest he
  • should read the secret there at once.
  • “Thou wilt not reveal his name? Not the less he is mine,” resumed he,
  • with a look of confidence, as if destiny were at one with him. “He
  • bears no letter of infamy wrought into his garment, as thou dost; but
  • I shall read it on his heart. Yet fear not for him! Think not that I
  • shall interfere with Heaven's own method of retribution, or, to my own
  • loss, betray him to the gripe of human law. Neither do thou imagine
  • that I shall contrive aught against his life; no, nor against his
  • fame, if, as I judge, he be a man of fair repute. Let him live! Let
  • him hide himself in outward honor, if he may! Not the less he shall be
  • mine!”
  • “Thy acts are like mercy,” said Hester, bewildered and appalled. “But
  • thy words interpret thee as a terror!”
  • “One thing, thou that wast my wife, I would enjoin upon thee,”
  • continued the scholar. “Thou hast kept the secret of thy paramour.
  • Keep, likewise, mine! There are none in this land that know me.
  • Breathe not, to any human soul, that thou didst ever call me husband!
  • Here, on this wild outskirt of the earth, I shall pitch my tent; for,
  • elsewhere a wanderer, and isolated from human interests, I find here a
  • woman, a man, a child, amongst whom and myself there exist the closest
  • ligaments. No matter whether of love or hate; no matter whether of
  • right or wrong! Thou and thine, Hester Prynne, belong to me. My home
  • is where thou art, and where he is. But betray me not!”
  • [Illustration: “The Eyes of the wrinkled Scholar glowed”]
  • “Wherefore dost thou desire it?” inquired Hester, shrinking, she
  • hardly knew why, from this secret bond. “Why not announce thyself
  • openly, and cast me off at once?”
  • “It may be,” he replied, “because I will not encounter the dishonor
  • that besmirches the husband of a faithless woman. It may be for other
  • reasons. Enough, it is my purpose to live and die unknown. Let,
  • therefore, thy husband be to the world as one already dead, and of
  • whom no tidings shall ever come. Recognize me not, by word, by sign,
  • by look! Breathe not the secret, above all, to the man thou wottest
  • of. Shouldst thou fail me in this, beware! His fame, his position, his
  • life, will be in my hands. Beware!”
  • “I will keep thy secret, as I have his,” said Hester.
  • “Swear it!” rejoined he.
  • And she took the oath.
  • “And now, Mistress Prynne,” said old Roger Chillingworth, as he was
  • hereafter to be named, “I leave thee alone; alone with thy infant, and
  • the scarlet letter! How is it, Hester? Doth thy sentence bind thee to
  • wear the token in thy sleep? Art thou not afraid of nightmares and
  • hideous dreams?”
  • “Why dost thou smile so at me?” inquired Hester, troubled at the
  • expression of his eyes. “Art thou like the Black Man that haunts the
  • forest round about us? Hast thou enticed me into a bond that will
  • prove the ruin of my soul?”
  • “Not thy soul,” he answered, with another smile. “No, not thine!”
  • [Illustration]
  • V.
  • HESTER AT HER NEEDLE.
  • Hester Prynne's term of confinement was now at an end. Her prison-door
  • was thrown open, and she came forth into the sunshine, which, falling
  • on all alike, seemed, to her sick and morbid heart, as if meant for no
  • other purpose than to reveal the scarlet letter on her breast. Perhaps
  • there was a more real torture in her first unattended footsteps from
  • the threshold of the prison, than even in the procession and spectacle
  • that have been described, where she was made the common infamy, at
  • which all mankind was summoned to point its finger. Then, she was
  • supported by an unnatural tension of the nerves, and by all the
  • combative energy of her character, which enabled her to convert the
  • scene into a kind of lurid triumph. It was, moreover, a separate and
  • insulated event, to occur but once in her lifetime, and to meet which,
  • therefore, reckless of economy, she might call up the vital strength
  • that would have sufficed for many quiet years. The very law that
  • condemned her—a giant of stern features, but with vigor to support,
  • as well as to annihilate, in his iron arm—had held her up, through
  • the terrible ordeal of her ignominy. But now, with this unattended
  • walk from her prison-door, began the daily custom; and she must either
  • sustain and carry it forward by the ordinary resources of her nature,
  • or sink beneath it. She could no longer borrow from the future to help
  • her through the present grief. To-morrow would bring its own trial
  • with it; so would the next day, and so would the next; each its own
  • trial, and yet the very same that was now so unutterably grievous to
  • be borne. The days of the far-off future would toil onward, still with
  • the same burden for her to take up, and bear along with her, but never
  • to fling down; for the accumulating days, and added years, would pile
  • up their misery upon the heap of shame. Throughout them all, giving up
  • her individuality, she would become the general symbol at which the
  • preacher and moralist might point, and in which they might vivify and
  • embody their images of woman's frailty and sinful passion. Thus the
  • young and pure would be taught to look at her, with the scarlet letter
  • flaming on her breast,—at her, the child of honorable parents,—at
  • her, the mother of a babe, that would hereafter be a woman,—at her,
  • who had once been innocent,—as the figure, the body, the reality of
  • sin. And over her grave, the infamy that she must carry thither would
  • be her only monument.
  • It may seem marvellous, that, with the world before her,—kept by no
  • restrictive clause of her condemnation within the limits of the
  • Puritan settlement, so remote and so obscure,—free to return to her
  • birthplace, or to any other European land, and there hide her
  • character and identity under a new exterior, as completely as if
  • emerging into another state of being,—and having also the passes of
  • the dark, inscrutable forest open to her, where the wildness of her
  • nature might assimilate itself with a people whose customs and life
  • were alien from the law that had condemned her,—it may seem
  • marvellous, that this woman should still call that place her home,
  • where, and where only, she must needs be the type of shame. But there
  • is a fatality, a feeling so irresistible and inevitable that it has
  • the force of doom, which almost invariably compels human beings to
  • linger around and haunt, ghost-like, the spot where some great and
  • marked event has given the color to their lifetime; and still the more
  • irresistibly, the darker the tinge that saddens it. Her sin, her
  • ignominy, were the roots which she had struck into the soil. It was as
  • if a new birth, with stronger assimilations than the first, had
  • converted the forest-land, still so uncongenial to every other pilgrim
  • and wanderer, into Hester Prynne's wild and dreary, but life-long
  • home. All other scenes of earth—even that village of rural England,
  • where happy infancy and stainless maidenhood seemed yet to be in her
  • mother's keeping, like garments put off long ago—were foreign to her,
  • in comparison. The chain that bound her here was of iron links, and
  • galling to her inmost soul, but could never be broken.
  • It might be, too,—doubtless it was so, although she hid the secret
  • from herself, and grew pale whenever it struggled out of her heart,
  • like a serpent from its hole,—it might be that another feeling kept
  • her within the scene and pathway that had been so fatal. There dwelt,
  • there trode the feet of one with whom she deemed herself connected in
  • a union, that, unrecognized on earth, would bring them together before
  • the bar of final judgment, and make that their marriage-altar, for a
  • joint futurity of endless retribution. Over and over again, the
  • tempter of souls had thrust this idea upon Hester's contemplation, and
  • laughed at the passionate and desperate joy with which she seized,
  • and then strove to cast it from her. She barely looked the idea in the
  • face, and hastened to bar it in its dungeon. What she compelled
  • herself to believe—what, finally, she reasoned upon, as her motive
  • for continuing a resident of New England—was half a truth, and half a
  • self-delusion. Here, she said to herself, had been the scene of her
  • guilt, and here should be the scene of her earthly punishment; and so,
  • perchance, the torture of her daily shame would at length purge her
  • soul, and work out another purity than that which she had lost; more
  • saint-like, because the result of martyrdom.
  • [Illustration: The Lonesome Dwelling]
  • Hester Prynne, therefore, did not flee. On the outskirts of the town,
  • within the verge of the peninsula, but not in close vicinity to any
  • other habitation, there was a small thatched cottage. It had been
  • built by an earlier settler, and abandoned because the soil about it
  • was too sterile for cultivation, while its comparative remoteness put
  • it out of the sphere of that social activity which already marked the
  • habits of the emigrants. It stood on the shore, looking across a basin
  • of the sea at the forest-covered hills, towards the west. A clump of
  • scrubby trees, such as alone grew on the peninsula, did not so much
  • conceal the cottage from view, as seem to denote that here was some
  • object which would fain have been, or at least ought to be, concealed.
  • In this little, lonesome dwelling, with some slender means that she
  • possessed, and by the license of the magistrates, who still kept an
  • inquisitorial watch over her, Hester established herself, with her
  • infant child. A mystic shadow of suspicion immediately attached itself
  • to the spot. Children, too young to comprehend wherefore this woman
  • should be shut out from the sphere of human charities, would creep
  • nigh enough to behold her plying her needle at the cottage-window, or
  • standing in the doorway, or laboring in her little garden, or coming
  • forth along the pathway that led townward; and, discerning the scarlet
  • letter on her breast, would scamper off with a strange, contagious
  • fear.
  • Lonely as was Hester's situation, and without a friend on earth who
  • dared to show himself, she, however, incurred no risk of want. She
  • possessed an art that sufficed, even in a land that afforded
  • comparatively little scope for its exercise, to supply food for her
  • thriving infant and herself. It was the art—then, as now, almost the
  • only one within a woman's grasp—of needlework. She bore on her
  • breast, in the curiously embroidered letter, a specimen of her
  • delicate and imaginative skill, of which the dames of a court might
  • gladly have availed themselves, to add the richer and more spiritual
  • adornment of human ingenuity to their fabrics of silk and gold. Here,
  • indeed, in the sable simplicity that generally characterized the
  • Puritanic modes of dress, there might be an infrequent call for the
  • finer productions of her handiwork. Yet the taste of the age,
  • demanding whatever was elaborate in compositions of this kind, did not
  • fail to extend its influence over our stern progenitors, who had cast
  • behind them so many fashions which it might seem harder to dispense
  • with. Public ceremonies, such as ordinations, the installation of
  • magistrates, and all that could give majesty to the forms in which a
  • new government manifested itself to the people, were, as a matter of
  • policy, marked by a stately and well-conducted ceremonial, and a
  • sombre, but yet a studied magnificence. Deep ruffs, painfully wrought
  • bands, and gorgeously embroidered gloves, were all deemed necessary to
  • the official state of men assuming the reins of power; and were
  • readily allowed to individuals dignified by rank or wealth, even while
  • sumptuary laws forbade these and similar extravagances to the plebeian
  • order. In the array of funerals, too,—whether for the apparel of the
  • dead body, or to typify, by manifold emblematic devices of sable cloth
  • and snowy lawn, the sorrow of the survivors,—there was a frequent and
  • characteristic demand for such labor as Hester Prynne could supply.
  • Baby-linen—for babies then wore robes of state—afforded still
  • another possibility of toil and emolument.
  • By degrees, nor very slowly, her handiwork became what would now be
  • termed the fashion. Whether from commiseration for a woman of so
  • miserable a destiny; or from the morbid curiosity that gives a
  • fictitious value even to common or worthless things; or by whatever
  • other intangible circumstance was then, as now, sufficient to bestow,
  • on some persons, what others might seek in vain; or because Hester
  • really filled a gap which must otherwise have remained vacant; it is
  • certain that she had ready and fairly requited employment for as many
  • hours as she saw fit to occupy with her needle. Vanity, it may be,
  • chose to mortify itself, by putting on, for ceremonials of pomp and
  • state, the garments that had been wrought by her sinful hands. Her
  • needlework was seen on the ruff of the Governor; military men wore it
  • on their scarfs, and the minister on his band; it decked the baby's
  • little cap; it was shut up, to be mildewed and moulder away, in the
  • coffins of the dead. But it is not recorded that, in a single
  • instance, her skill was called in aid to embroider the white veil
  • which was to cover the pure blushes of a bride. The exception
  • indicated the ever-relentless rigor with which society frowned upon
  • her sin.
  • Hester sought not to acquire anything beyond a subsistence, of the
  • plainest and most ascetic description, for herself, and a simple
  • abundance for her child. Her own dress was of the coarsest materials
  • and the most sombre hue; with only that one ornament,—the scarlet
  • letter,—which it was her doom to wear. The child's attire, on the
  • other hand, was distinguished by a fanciful, or, we might rather say,
  • a fantastic ingenuity, which served, indeed, to heighten the airy
  • charm that early began to develop itself in the little girl, but which
  • appeared to have also a deeper meaning. We may speak further of it
  • hereafter. Except for that small expenditure in the decoration of her
  • infant, Hester bestowed all her superfluous means in charity, on
  • wretches less miserable than herself, and who not unfrequently
  • insulted the hand that fed them. Much of the time, which she might
  • readily have applied to the better efforts of her art, she employed in
  • making coarse garments for the poor. It is probable that there was an
  • idea of penance in this mode of occupation, and that she offered up a
  • real sacrifice of enjoyment, in devoting so many hours to such rude
  • handiwork. She had in her nature a rich, voluptuous, Oriental
  • characteristic,—a taste for the gorgeously beautiful, which, save in
  • the exquisite productions of her needle, found nothing else, in all
  • the possibilities of her life, to exercise itself upon. Women derive
  • a pleasure, incomprehensible to the other sex, from the delicate toil
  • of the needle. To Hester Prynne it might have been a mode of
  • expressing, and therefore soothing, the passion of her life. Like all
  • other joys, she rejected it as sin. This morbid meddling of conscience
  • with an immaterial matter betokened, it is to be feared, no genuine
  • and steadfast penitence, but something doubtful, something that might
  • be deeply wrong, beneath.
  • In this manner, Hester Prynne came to have a part to perform in the
  • world. With her native energy of character, and rare capacity, it
  • could not entirely cast her off, although it had set a mark upon her,
  • more intolerable to a woman's heart than that which branded the brow
  • of Cain. In all her intercourse with society, however, there was
  • nothing that made her feel as if she belonged to it. Every gesture,
  • every word, and even the silence of those with whom she came in
  • contact, implied, and often expressed, that she was banished, and as
  • much alone as if she inhabited another sphere, or communicated with
  • the common nature by other organs and senses than the rest of human
  • kind. She stood apart from moral interests, yet close beside them,
  • like a ghost that revisits the familiar fireside, and can no longer
  • make itself seen or felt; no more smile with the household joy, nor
  • mourn with the kindred sorrow; or, should it succeed in manifesting
  • its forbidden sympathy, awakening only terror and horrible repugnance.
  • These emotions, in fact, and its bitterest scorn besides, seemed to be
  • the sole portion that she retained in the universal heart. It was not
  • an age of delicacy; and her position, although she understood it well,
  • and was in little danger of forgetting it, was often brought before
  • her vivid self-perception, like a new anguish, by the rudest touch
  • upon the tenderest spot. The poor, as we have already said, whom she
  • sought out to be the objects of her bounty, often reviled the hand
  • that was stretched forth to succor them. Dames of elevated rank,
  • likewise, whose doors she entered in the way of her occupation, were
  • accustomed to distil drops of bitterness into her heart; sometimes
  • through that alchemy of quiet malice, by which women can concoct a
  • subtle poison from ordinary trifles; and sometimes, also, by a coarser
  • expression, that fell upon the sufferer's defenceless breast like a
  • rough blow upon an ulcerated wound. Hester had schooled herself long
  • and well; she never responded to these attacks, save by a flush of
  • crimson that rose irrepressibly over her pale cheek, and again
  • subsided into the depths of her bosom. She was patient,—a martyr,
  • indeed,—but she forbore to pray for her enemies; lest, in spite of
  • her forgiving aspirations, the words of the blessing should stubbornly
  • twist themselves into a curse.
  • Continually, and in a thousand other ways, did she feel the
  • innumerable throbs of anguish that had been so cunningly contrived for
  • her by the undying, the ever-active sentence of the Puritan tribunal.
  • Clergymen paused in the street to address words of exhortation, that
  • brought a crowd, with its mingled grin and frown, around the poor,
  • sinful woman. If she entered a church, trusting to share the Sabbath
  • smile of the Universal Father, it was often her mishap to find herself
  • the text of the discourse. She grew to have a dread of children; for
  • they had imbibed from their parents a vague idea of something horrible
  • in this dreary woman, gliding silently through the town, with never
  • any companion but one only child. Therefore, first allowing her to
  • pass, they pursued her at a distance with shrill cries, and the
  • utterance of a word that had no distinct purport to their own
  • minds, but was none the less terrible to her, as proceeding from lips
  • that babbled it unconsciously. It seemed to argue so wide a diffusion
  • of her shame, that all nature knew of it; it could have caused her no
  • deeper pang, had the leaves of the trees whispered the dark story
  • among themselves,—had the summer breeze murmured about it,—had the
  • wintry blast shrieked it aloud! Another peculiar torture was felt in
  • the gaze of a new eye. When strangers looked curiously at the scarlet
  • letter,—and none ever failed to do so,—they branded it afresh into
  • Hester's soul; so that, oftentimes, she could scarcely refrain, yet
  • always did refrain, from covering the symbol with her hand. But then,
  • again, an accustomed eye had likewise its own anguish to inflict. Its
  • cool stare of familiarity was intolerable. From first to last, in
  • short, Hester Prynne had always this dreadful agony in feeling a human
  • eye upon the token; the spot never grew callous; it seemed, on the
  • contrary, to grow more sensitive with daily torture.
  • [Illustration: Lonely Footsteps]
  • But sometimes, once in many days, or perchance in many months, she
  • felt an eye—a human eye—upon the ignominious brand, that seemed to
  • give a momentary relief, as if half of her agony were shared. The next
  • instant, back it all rushed again, with still a deeper throb of pain;
  • for, in that brief interval, she had sinned anew. Had Hester sinned
  • alone?
  • Her imagination was somewhat affected, and, had she been of a softer
  • moral and intellectual fibre, would have been still more so, by the
  • strange and solitary anguish of her life. Walking to and fro, with
  • those lonely footsteps, in the little world with which she was
  • outwardly connected, it now and then appeared to Hester,—if
  • altogether fancy, it was nevertheless too potent to be resisted,—she
  • felt or fancied, then, that the scarlet letter had endowed her with a
  • new sense. She shuddered to believe, yet could not help believing,
  • that it gave her a sympathetic knowledge of the hidden sin in other
  • hearts. She was terror-stricken by the revelations that were thus
  • made. What were they? Could they be other than the insidious whispers
  • of the bad angel, who would fain have persuaded the struggling woman,
  • as yet only half his victim, that the outward guise of purity was but
  • a lie, and that, if truth were everywhere to be shown, a scarlet
  • letter would blaze forth on many a bosom besides Hester Prynne's? Or,
  • must she receive those intimations—so obscure, yet so distinct—as
  • truth? In all her miserable experience, there was nothing else so
  • awful and so loathsome as this sense. It perplexed, as well as shocked
  • her, by the irreverent inopportuneness of the occasions that brought
  • it into vivid action. Sometimes the red infamy upon her breast would
  • give a sympathetic throb, as she passed near a venerable minister or
  • magistrate, the model of piety and justice, to whom that age of
  • antique reverence looked up, as to a mortal man in fellowship with
  • angels. “What evil thing is at hand?” would Hester say to herself.
  • Lifting her reluctant eyes, there would be nothing human within the
  • scope of view, save the form of this earthly saint! Again, a mystic
  • sisterhood would contumaciously assert itself, as she met the
  • sanctified frown of some matron, who, according to the rumor of all
  • tongues, had kept cold snow within her bosom throughout life. That
  • unsunned snow in the matron's bosom, and the burning shame on Hester
  • Prynne's,—what had the two in common? Or, once more, the electric
  • thrill would give her warning,—“Behold, Hester, here is a
  • companion!”—and, looking up, she would detect the eyes of a young
  • maiden glancing at the scarlet letter, shyly and aside, and quickly
  • averted with a faint, chill crimson in her cheeks; as if her purity
  • were somewhat sullied by that momentary glance. O Fiend, whose
  • talisman was that fatal symbol, wouldst thou leave nothing, whether in
  • youth or age, for this poor sinner to revere?—such loss of faith is
  • ever one of the saddest results of sin. Be it accepted as a proof that
  • all was not corrupt in this poor victim of her own frailty, and man's
  • hard law, that Hester Prynne yet struggled to believe that no
  • fellow-mortal was guilty like herself.
  • The vulgar, who, in those dreary old times, were always contributing a
  • grotesque horror to what interested their imaginations, had a story
  • about the scarlet letter which we might readily work up into a
  • terrific legend. They averred, that the symbol was not mere scarlet
  • cloth, tinged in an earthly dye-pot, but was red-hot with infernal
  • fire, and could be seen glowing all alight, whenever Hester Prynne
  • walked abroad in the night-time. And we must needs say, it seared
  • Hester's bosom so deeply, that perhaps there was more truth in the
  • rumor than our modern incredulity may be inclined to admit.
  • [Illustration]
  • [Illustration]
  • VI.
  • PEARL.
  • [Illustration]
  • We have as yet hardly spoken of the infant; that little creature,
  • whose innocent life had sprung, by the inscrutable decree of
  • Providence, a lovely and immortal flower, out of the rank luxuriance
  • of a guilty passion. How strange it seemed to the sad woman, as she
  • watched the growth, and the beauty that became every day more
  • brilliant, and the intelligence that threw its quivering sunshine over
  • the tiny features of this child! Her Pearl!—For so had Hester called
  • her; not as a name expressive of her aspect, which had nothing of the
  • calm, white, unimpassioned lustre that would be indicated by the
  • comparison. But she named the infant “Pearl,” as being of great
  • price,—purchased with all she had,—her mother's only treasure! How
  • strange, indeed! Man had marked this woman's sin by a scarlet letter,
  • which had such potent and disastrous efficacy that no human sympathy
  • could reach her, save it were sinful like herself. God, as a direct
  • consequence of the sin which man thus punished, had given her a lovely
  • child, whose place was on that same dishonored bosom, to connect her
  • parent forever with the race and descent of mortals, and to be finally
  • a blessed soul in heaven! Yet these thoughts affected Hester Prynne
  • less with hope than apprehension. She knew that her deed had been
  • evil; she could have no faith, therefore, that its result would be
  • good. Day after day, she looked fearfully into the child's expanding
  • nature, ever dreading to detect some dark and wild peculiarity, that
  • should correspond with the guiltiness to which she owed her being.
  • Certainly, there was no physical defect. By its perfect shape, its
  • vigor, and its natural dexterity in the use of all its untried limbs,
  • the infant was worthy to have been brought forth in Eden; worthy to
  • have been left there, to be the plaything of the angels, after the
  • world's first parents were driven out. The child had a native grace
  • which does not invariably coexist with faultless beauty; its attire,
  • however simple, always impressed the beholder as if it were the very
  • garb that precisely became it best. But little Pearl was not clad in
  • rustic weeds. Her mother, with a morbid purpose that may be better
  • understood hereafter, had bought the richest tissues that could be
  • procured, and allowed her imaginative faculty its full play in the
  • arrangement and decoration of the dresses which the child wore, before
  • the public eye. So magnificent was the small figure, when thus
  • arrayed, and such was the splendor of Pearl's own proper beauty,
  • shining through the gorgeous robes which might have extinguished a
  • paler loveliness, that there was an absolute circle of radiance around
  • her, on the darksome cottage floor. And yet a russet gown, torn and
  • soiled with the child's rude play, made a picture of her just as
  • perfect. Pearl's aspect was imbued with a spell of infinite variety;
  • in this one child there were many children, comprehending the full
  • scope between the wild-flower prettiness of a peasant-baby, and the
  • pomp, in little, of an infant princess. Throughout all, however, there
  • was a trait of passion, a certain depth of hue, which she never lost;
  • and if, in any of her changes, she had grown fainter or paler, she
  • would have ceased to be herself,—it would have been no longer Pearl!
  • This outward mutability indicated, and did not more than fairly
  • express, the various properties of her inner life. Her nature appeared
  • to possess depth, too, as well as variety; but—or else Hester's fears
  • deceived her—it lacked reference and adaptation to the world into
  • which she was born. The child could not be made amenable to rules. In
  • giving her existence, a great law had been broken; and the result was
  • a being whose elements were perhaps beautiful and brilliant, but all
  • in disorder; or with an order peculiar to themselves, amidst which the
  • point of variety and arrangement was difficult or impossible to be
  • discovered. Hester could only account for the child's character—and
  • even then most vaguely and imperfectly—by recalling what she herself
  • had been, during that momentous period while Pearl was imbibing her
  • soul from the spiritual world, and her bodily frame from its material
  • of earth. The mother's impassioned state had been the medium through
  • which were transmitted to the unborn infant the rays of its moral
  • life; and, however white and clear originally, they had taken the deep
  • stains of crimson and gold, the fiery lustre, the black shadow, and
  • the untempered light of the intervening substance. Above all, the
  • warfare of Hester's spirit, at that epoch, was perpetuated in Pearl.
  • She could recognize her wild, desperate, defiant mood, the flightiness
  • of her temper, and even some of the very cloud-shapes of gloom and
  • despondency that had brooded in her heart. They were now illuminated
  • by the morning radiance of a young child's disposition, but later in
  • the day of earthly existence might be prolific of the storm and
  • whirlwind.
  • The discipline of the family, in those days, was of a far more rigid
  • kind than now. The frown, the harsh rebuke, the frequent application
  • of the rod, enjoined by Scriptural authority, were used, not merely in
  • the way of punishment for actual offences, but as a wholesome regimen
  • for the growth and promotion of all childish virtues. Hester Prynne,
  • nevertheless, the lonely mother of this one child, ran little risk of
  • erring on the side of undue severity. Mindful, however, of her own
  • errors and misfortunes, she early sought to impose a tender, but
  • strict control over the infant immortality that was committed to her
  • charge. But the task was beyond her skill. After testing both smiles
  • and frowns, and proving that neither mode of treatment possessed any
  • calculable influence, Hester was ultimately compelled to stand aside,
  • and permit the child to be swayed by her own impulses. Physical
  • compulsion or restraint was effectual, of course, while it lasted. As
  • to any other kind of discipline, whether addressed to her mind or
  • heart, little Pearl might or might not be within its reach, in
  • accordance with the caprice that ruled the moment. Her mother, while
  • Pearl was yet an infant, grew acquainted with a certain peculiar look,
  • that warned her when it would be labor thrown away to insist,
  • persuade, or plead. It was a look so intelligent, yet inexplicable,
  • so perverse, sometimes so malicious, but generally accompanied by a
  • wild flow of spirits, that Hester could not help questioning, at such
  • moments, whether Pearl were a human child. She seemed rather an airy
  • sprite, which, after playing its fantastic sports for a little while
  • upon the cottage floor, would flit away with a mocking smile. Whenever
  • that look appeared in her wild, bright, deeply black eyes, it invested
  • her with a strange remoteness and intangibility; it was as if she were
  • hovering in the air and might vanish, like a glimmering light, that
  • comes we know not whence, and goes we know not whither. Beholding it,
  • Hester was constrained to rush towards the child,—to pursue the
  • little elf in the flight which she invariably began,—to snatch her to
  • her bosom, with a close pressure and earnest kisses,—not so much from
  • overflowing love, as to assure herself that Pearl was flesh and blood,
  • and not utterly delusive. But Pearl's laugh, when she was caught,
  • though full of merriment and music, made her mother more doubtful than
  • before.
  • Heart-smitten at this bewildering and baffling spell, that so often
  • came between herself and her sole treasure, whom she had bought so
  • dear, and who was all her world, Hester sometimes burst into
  • passionate tears. Then, perhaps,—for there was no foreseeing how it
  • might affect her,—Pearl would frown, and clench her little fist, and
  • harden her small features into a stern, unsympathizing look of
  • discontent. Not seldom, she would laugh anew, and louder than before,
  • like a thing incapable and unintelligent of human sorrow. Or—but this
  • more rarely happened—she would be convulsed with a rage of grief, and
  • sob out her love for her mother, in broken words, and seem intent on
  • proving that she had a heart, by breaking it. Yet Hester was hardly
  • safe in confiding herself to that gusty tenderness; it passed, as
  • suddenly as it came. Brooding over all these matters, the mother felt
  • like one who has evoked a spirit, but, by some irregularity in the
  • process of conjuration, has failed to win the master-word that should
  • control this new and incomprehensible intelligence. Her only real
  • comfort was when the child lay in the placidity of sleep. Then she was
  • sure of her, and tasted hours of quiet, sad, delicious happiness;
  • until—perhaps with that perverse expression glimmering from beneath
  • her opening lids—little Pearl awoke!
  • How soon—with what strange rapidity, indeed!—did Pearl arrive at an
  • age that was capable of social intercourse, beyond the mother's
  • ever-ready smile and nonsense-words! And then what a happiness would
  • it have been, could Hester Prynne have heard her clear, bird-like
  • voice mingling with the uproar of other childish voices, and have
  • distinguished and unravelled her own darling's tones, amid all the
  • entangled outcry of a group of sportive children! But this could never
  • be. Pearl was a born outcast of the infantile world. An imp of evil,
  • emblem and product of sin, she had no right among christened infants.
  • Nothing was more remarkable than the instinct, as it seemed, with
  • which the child comprehended her loneliness; the destiny that had
  • drawn an inviolable circle round about her; the whole peculiarity, in
  • short, of her position in respect to other children. Never, since her
  • release from prison, had Hester met the public gaze without her. In
  • all her walks about the town, Pearl, too, was there; first as the babe
  • in arms, and afterwards as the little girl, small companion of her
  • mother, holding a forefinger with her whole grasp, and tripping along
  • at the rate of three or four footsteps to one of Hester's. She saw the
  • children of the settlement, on the grassy margin of the street, or at
  • the domestic thresholds, disporting themselves in such grim fashion
  • as the Puritanic nurture would permit; playing at going to church,
  • perchance; or at scourging Quakers; or taking scalps in a sham-fight
  • with the Indians; or scaring one another with freaks of imitative
  • witchcraft. Pearl saw, and gazed intently, but never sought to make
  • acquaintance. If spoken to, she would not speak again. If the children
  • gathered about her, as they sometimes did, Pearl would grow positively
  • terrible in her puny wrath, snatching up stones to fling at them, with
  • shrill, incoherent exclamations, that made her mother tremble, because
  • they had so much the sound of a witch's anathemas in some unknown
  • tongue.
  • The truth was, that the little Puritans, being of the most intolerant
  • brood that ever lived, had got a vague idea of something outlandish,
  • unearthly, or at variance with ordinary fashions, in the mother and
  • child; and therefore scorned them in their hearts, and not
  • unfrequently reviled them with their tongues. Pearl felt the
  • sentiment, and requited it with the bitterest hatred that can be
  • supposed to rankle in a childish bosom. These outbreaks of a fierce
  • temper had a kind of value, and even comfort, for her mother; because
  • there was at least an intelligible earnestness in the mood, instead of
  • the fitful caprice that so often thwarted her in the child's
  • manifestations. It appalled her, nevertheless, to discern here, again,
  • a shadowy reflection of the evil that had existed in herself. All this
  • enmity and passion had Pearl inherited, by inalienable right, out of
  • Hester's heart. Mother and daughter stood together in the same circle
  • of seclusion from human society; and in the nature of the child seemed
  • to be perpetuated those unquiet elements that had distracted Hester
  • Prynne before Pearl's birth, but had since begun to be soothed away by
  • the softening influences of maternity.
  • At home, within and around her mother's cottage, Pearl wanted not a
  • wide and various circle of acquaintance. The spell of life went forth
  • from her ever-creative spirit, and communicated itself to a thousand
  • objects, as a torch kindles a flame wherever it may be applied. The
  • unlikeliest materials—a stick, a bunch of rags, a flower—were the
  • puppets of Pearl's witchcraft, and, without undergoing any outward
  • change, became spiritually adapted to whatever drama occupied the
  • stage of her inner world. Her one baby-voice served a multitude of
  • imaginary personages, old and young, to talk withal. The pine-trees,
  • aged, black and solemn, and flinging groans and other melancholy
  • utterances on the breeze, needed little transformation to figure as
  • Puritan elders; the ugliest weeds of the garden were their children,
  • whom Pearl smote down and uprooted, most unmercifully. It was
  • wonderful, the vast variety of forms into which she threw her
  • intellect, with no continuity, indeed, but darting up and dancing,
  • always in a state of preternatural activity,—soon sinking down, as if
  • exhausted by so rapid and feverish a tide of life,—and succeeded by
  • other shapes of a similar wild energy. It was like nothing so much as
  • the phantasmagoric play of the northern lights. In the mere exercise
  • of the fancy, however, and the sportiveness of a growing mind, there
  • might be little more than was observable in other children of bright
  • faculties; except as Pearl, in the dearth of human playmates, was
  • thrown more upon the visionary throng which she created. The
  • singularity lay in the hostile feelings with which the child regarded
  • all these offspring of her own heart and mind. She never created a
  • friend, but seemed always to be sowing broadcast the dragon's teeth,
  • whence sprung a harvest of armed enemies, against whom she rushed to
  • battle. It was inexpressibly sad—then what depth of sorrow to a
  • mother, who felt in her own heart the cause!—to observe, in one so
  • young, this constant recognition of an adverse world, and so fierce a
  • training of the energies that were to make good her cause, in the
  • contest that must ensue.
  • Gazing at Pearl, Hester Prynne often dropped her work upon her knees,
  • and cried out with an agony which she would fain have hidden, but
  • which made utterance for itself, betwixt speech and a groan,—“O
  • Father in Heaven,—if Thou art still my Father,—what is this being
  • which I have brought into the world!” And Pearl, overhearing the
  • ejaculation, or aware, through some more subtile channel, of those
  • throbs of anguish, would turn her vivid and beautiful little face upon
  • her mother, smile with sprite-like intelligence, and resume her play.
  • [Illustration: A touch of Pearl's baby-hand]
  • One peculiarity of the child's deportment remains yet to be told. The
  • very first thing which she had noticed in her life was—what?—not the
  • mother's smile, responding to it, as other babies do, by that faint,
  • embryo smile of the little mouth, remembered so doubtfully afterwards,
  • and with such fond discussion whether it were indeed a smile. By no
  • means! But that first object of which Pearl seemed to become aware
  • was—shall we say it?—the scarlet letter on Hester's bosom! One day,
  • as her mother stooped over the cradle, the infant's eyes had been
  • caught by the glimmering of the gold embroidery about the letter; and,
  • putting up her little hand, she grasped at it, smiling, not
  • doubtfully, but with a decided gleam, that gave her face the look of a
  • much older child. Then, gasping for breath, did Hester Prynne clutch
  • the fatal token, instinctively endeavoring to tear it away; so
  • infinite was the torture inflicted by the intelligent touch of Pearl's
  • baby-hand. Again, as if her mother's agonized gesture were meant only
  • to make sport for her, did little Pearl look into her eyes, and
  • smile! From that epoch, except when the child was asleep, Hester had
  • never felt a moment's safety; not a moment's calm enjoyment of her.
  • Weeks, it is true, would sometimes elapse, during which Pearl's gaze
  • might never once be fixed upon the scarlet letter; but then, again, it
  • would come at unawares, like the stroke of sudden death, and always
  • with that peculiar smile, and odd expression of the eyes.
  • Once, this freakish, elvish cast came into the child's eyes, while
  • Hester was looking at her own image in them, as mothers are fond of
  • doing; and, suddenly,—for women in solitude, and with troubled
  • hearts, are pestered with unaccountable delusions,—she fancied that
  • she beheld, not her own miniature portrait, but another face, in the
  • small black mirror of Pearl's eye. It was a face, fiend-like, full of
  • smiling malice, yet bearing the semblance of features that she had
  • known full well, though seldom with a smile, and never with malice in
  • them. It was as if an evil spirit possessed the child, and had just
  • then peeped forth in mockery. Many a time afterwards had Hester been
  • tortured, though less vividly, by the same illusion.
  • In the afternoon of a certain summer's day, after Pearl grew big
  • enough to run about, she amused herself with gathering handfuls of
  • wild-flowers, and flinging them, one by one, at her mother's bosom;
  • dancing up and down, like a little elf, whenever she hit the scarlet
  • letter. Hester's first motion had been to cover her bosom with her
  • clasped hands. But, whether from pride or resignation, or a feeling
  • that her penance might best be wrought out by this unutterable pain,
  • she resisted the impulse, and sat erect, pale as death, looking sadly
  • into little Pearl's wild eyes. Still came the battery of flowers,
  • almost invariably hitting the mark, and covering the mother's breast
  • with hurts for which she could find no balm in this world, nor knew
  • how to seek it in another. At last, her shot being all expended, the
  • child stood still and gazed at Hester, with that little, laughing
  • image of a fiend peeping out—or, whether it peeped or no, her mother
  • so imagined it—from the unsearchable abyss of her black eyes.
  • “Child, what art thou?” cried the mother.
  • “O, I am your little Pearl!” answered the child.
  • But, while she said it, Pearl laughed, and began to dance up and down,
  • with the humorsome gesticulation of a little imp, whose next freak
  • might be to fly up the chimney.
  • “Art thou my child, in very truth?” asked Hester.
  • Nor did she put the question altogether idly, but, for the moment,
  • with a portion of genuine earnestness; for, such was Pearl's wonderful
  • intelligence, that her mother half doubted whether she were not
  • acquainted with the secret spell of her existence, and might not now
  • reveal herself.
  • “Yes; I am little Pearl!” repeated the child, continuing her antics.
  • “Thou art not my child! Thou art no Pearl of mine!” said the mother,
  • half playfully; for it was often the case that a sportive impulse came
  • over her, in the midst of her deepest suffering. “Tell me, then, what
  • thou art, and who sent thee hither.”
  • “Tell me, mother!” said the child, seriously, coming up to Hester, and
  • pressing herself close to her knees. “Do thou tell me!”
  • “Thy Heavenly Father sent thee!” answered Hester Prynne.
  • But she said it with a hesitation that did not escape the acuteness of
  • the child. Whether moved only by her ordinary freakishness, or
  • because an evil spirit prompted her, she put up her small forefinger,
  • and touched the scarlet letter.
  • “He did not send me!” cried she, positively. “I have no Heavenly
  • Father!”
  • “Hush, Pearl, hush! Thou must not talk so!” answered the mother,
  • suppressing a groan. “He sent us all into this world. He sent even me,
  • thy mother. Then, much more, thee! Or, if not, thou strange and elfish
  • child, whence didst thou come?”
  • “Tell me! Tell me!” repeated Pearl, no longer seriously, but laughing,
  • and capering about the floor. “It is thou that must tell me!”
  • But Hester could not resolve the query, being herself in a dismal
  • labyrinth of doubt. She remembered—betwixt a smile and a shudder—the
  • talk of the neighboring towns-people; who, seeking vainly elsewhere
  • for the child's paternity, and observing some of her odd attributes,
  • had given out that poor little Pearl was a demon offspring; such as,
  • ever since old Catholic times, had occasionally been seen on earth,
  • through the agency of their mother's sin, and to promote some foul and
  • wicked purpose. Luther, according to the scandal of his monkish
  • enemies, was a brat of that hellish breed; nor was Pearl the only
  • child to whom this inauspicious origin was assigned, among the New
  • England Puritans.
  • [Illustration]
  • [Illustration]
  • VII.
  • THE GOVERNOR'S HALL.
  • [Illustration]
  • Hester Prynne went, one day, to the mansion of Governor Bellingham,
  • with a pair of gloves, which she had fringed and embroidered to his
  • order, and which were to be worn on some great occasion of state; for,
  • though the chances of a popular election had caused this former ruler
  • to descend a step or two from the highest rank, he still held an
  • honorable and influential place among the colonial magistracy.
  • Another and far more important reason than the delivery of a pair of
  • embroidered gloves impelled Hester, at this time, to seek an interview
  • with a personage of so much power and activity in the affairs of the
  • settlement. It had reached her ears, that there was a design on the
  • part of some of the leading inhabitants, cherishing the more rigid
  • order of principles in religion and government, to deprive her of her
  • child. On the supposition that Pearl, as already hinted, was of demon
  • origin, these good people not unreasonably argued that a Christian
  • interest in the mother's soul required them to remove such a
  • stumbling-block from her path. If the child, on the other hand, were
  • really capable of moral and religious growth, and possessed the
  • elements of ultimate salvation, then, surely, it would enjoy all the
  • fairer prospect of these advantages, by being transferred to wiser and
  • better guardianship than Hester Prynne's. Among those who promoted the
  • design, Governor Bellingham was said to be one of the most busy. It
  • may appear singular, and indeed, not a little ludicrous, that an
  • affair of this kind, which, in later days, would have been referred to
  • no higher jurisdiction than that of the selectmen of the town, should
  • then have been a question publicly discussed, and on which statesmen
  • of eminence took sides. At that epoch of pristine simplicity, however,
  • matters of even slighter public interest, and of far less intrinsic
  • weight, than the welfare of Hester and her child, were strangely mixed
  • up with the deliberations of legislators and acts of state. The period
  • was hardly, if at all, earlier than that of our story, when a dispute
  • concerning the right of property in a pig not only caused a fierce and
  • bitter contest in the legislative body of the colony, but resulted in
  • an important modification of the framework itself of the legislature.
  • Full of concern, therefore,—but so conscious of her own right that it
  • seemed scarcely an unequal match between the public, on the one side,
  • and a lonely woman, backed by the sympathies of nature, on the
  • other,—Hester Prynne set forth from her solitary cottage. Little
  • Pearl, of course, was her companion. She was now of an age to run
  • lightly along by her mother's side, and, constantly in motion, from
  • morn till sunset, could have accomplished a much longer journey than
  • that before her. Often, nevertheless, more from caprice than
  • necessity, she demanded to be taken up in arms; but was soon as
  • imperious to be set down again, and frisked onward before Hester on
  • the grassy pathway, with many a harmless trip and tumble. We have
  • spoken of Pearl's rich and luxuriant beauty; a beauty that shone with
  • deep and vivid tints; a bright complexion, eyes possessing intensity
  • both of depth and glow, and hair already of a deep, glossy brown, and
  • which, in after years, would be nearly akin to black. There was fire
  • in her and throughout her; she seemed the unpremeditated offshoot of a
  • passionate moment. Her mother, in contriving the child's garb, had
  • allowed the gorgeous tendencies of her imagination their full play;
  • arraying her in a crimson velvet tunic, of a peculiar cut, abundantly
  • embroidered with fantasies and flourishes of gold-thread. So much
  • strength of coloring, which must have given a wan and pallid aspect to
  • cheeks of a fainter bloom, was admirably adapted to Pearl's beauty,
  • and made her the very brightest little jet of flame that ever danced
  • upon the earth.
  • But it was a remarkable attribute of this garb, and, indeed, of the
  • child's whole appearance, that it irresistibly and inevitably reminded
  • the beholder of the token which Hester Prynne was doomed to wear upon
  • her bosom. It was the scarlet letter in another form; the scarlet
  • letter endowed with life! The mother herself—as if the red ignominy
  • were so deeply scorched into her brain that all her conceptions
  • assumed its form—had carefully wrought out the similitude; lavishing
  • many hours of morbid ingenuity, to create an analogy between the
  • object of her affection and the emblem of her guilt and torture. But,
  • in truth, Pearl was the one, as well as the other; and only in
  • consequence of that identity had Hester contrived so perfectly to
  • represent the scarlet letter in her appearance.
  • As the two wayfarers came within the precincts of the town, the
  • children of the Puritans looked up from their play,—or what passed
  • for play with those sombre little urchins,—and spake gravely one to
  • another:—
  • “Behold, verily, there is the woman of the scarlet letter; and, of a
  • truth, moreover, there is the likeness of the scarlet letter running
  • along by her side! Come, therefore, and let us fling mud at them!”
  • But Pearl, who was a dauntless child, after frowning, stamping her
  • foot, and shaking her little hand with a variety of threatening
  • gestures, suddenly made a rush at the knot of her enemies, and put
  • them all to flight. She resembled, in her fierce pursuit of them, an
  • infant pestilence,—the scarlet fever, or some such half-fledged angel
  • of judgment,—whose mission was to punish the sins of the rising
  • generation. She screamed and shouted, too, with a terrific volume of
  • sound, which, doubtless, caused the hearts of the fugitives to quake
  • within them. The victory accomplished, Pearl returned quietly to her
  • mother, and looked up, smiling, into her face.
  • Without further adventure, they reached the dwelling of Governor
  • Bellingham. This was a large wooden house, built in a fashion of which
  • there are specimens still extant in the streets of our older towns;
  • now moss-grown, crumbling to decay, and melancholy at heart with the
  • many sorrowful or joyful occurrences, remembered or forgotten, that
  • have happened, and passed away, within their dusky chambers. Then,
  • however, there was the freshness of the passing year on its exterior,
  • and the cheerfulness, gleaming forth from the sunny windows, of a
  • human habitation, into which death had never entered. It had, indeed,
  • a very cheery aspect; the walls being overspread with a kind of
  • stucco, in which fragments of broken glass were plentifully
  • intermixed; so that, when the sunshine fell aslant-wise over the front
  • of the edifice, it glittered and sparkled as if diamonds had been
  • flung against it by the double handful. The brilliancy might have
  • befitted Aladdin's palace, rather than the mansion of a grave old
  • Puritan ruler. It was further decorated with strange and seemingly
  • cabalistic figures and diagrams, suitable to the quaint taste of the
  • age, which had been drawn in the stucco when newly laid on, and had
  • now grown hard and durable, for the admiration of after times.
  • Pearl, looking at this bright wonder of a house, began to caper and
  • dance, and imperatively required that the whole breadth of sunshine
  • should be stripped off its front, and given her to play with.
  • “No, my little Pearl!” said her mother. “Thou must gather thine own
  • sunshine. I have none to give thee!”
  • They approached the door; which was of an arched form, and flanked on
  • each side by a narrow tower or projection of the edifice, in both of
  • which were lattice-windows, with wooden shutters to close over them at
  • need. Lifting the iron hammer that hung at the portal, Hester Prynne
  • gave a summons, which was answered by one of the Governor's
  • bond-servants; a free-born Englishman, but now a seven years' slave.
  • During that term he was to be the property of his master, and as much
  • a commodity of bargain and sale as an ox, or a joint-stool. The serf
  • wore the blue coat, which was the customary garb of serving-men of
  • that period, and long before, in the old hereditary halls of England.
  • “Is the worshipful Governor Bellingham within?” inquired Hester.
  • “Yea, forsooth,” replied the bond-servant, staring with wide-open eyes
  • at the scarlet letter, which, being a new-comer in the country, he had
  • never before seen. “Yea, his honorable worship is within. But he hath
  • a godly minister or two with him, and likewise a leech. Ye may not see
  • his worship now.”
  • “Nevertheless, I will enter,” answered Hester Prynne, and the
  • bond-servant, perhaps judging from the decision of her air, and the
  • glittering symbol in her bosom, that she was a great lady in the land,
  • offered no opposition.
  • So the mother and little Pearl were admitted into the hall of
  • entrance. With many variations, suggested by the nature of his
  • building-materials, diversity of climate, and a different mode of
  • social life, Governor Bellingham had planned his new habitation after
  • the residences of gentlemen of fair estate in his native land. Here,
  • then, was a wide and reasonably lofty hall, extending through the
  • whole depth of the house, and forming a medium of general
  • communication, more or less directly, with all the other apartments.
  • At one extremity, this spacious room was lighted by the windows of the
  • two towers, which formed a small recess on either side of the portal.
  • At the other end, though partly muffled by a curtain, it was more
  • powerfully illuminated by one of those embowed hall-windows which we
  • read of in old books, and which was provided with a deep and cushioned
  • seat. Here, on the cushion, lay a folio tome, probably of the
  • Chronicles of England, or other such substantial literature; even as,
  • in our own days, we scatter gilded volumes on the centre-table, to be
  • turned over by the casual guest. The furniture of the hall consisted
  • of some ponderous chairs, the backs of which were elaborately carved
  • with wreaths of oaken flowers; and likewise a table in the same taste;
  • the whole being of the Elizabethan age, or perhaps earlier, and
  • heirlooms, transferred hither from the Governor's paternal home. On
  • the table—in token that the sentiment of old English hospitality had
  • not been left behind—stood a large pewter tankard, at the bottom of
  • which, had Hester or Pearl peeped into it, they might have seen the
  • frothy remnant of a recent draught of ale.
  • On the wall hung a row of portraits, representing the forefathers of
  • the Bellingham lineage, some with armor on their breasts, and others
  • with stately ruffs and robes of peace. All were characterized by the
  • sternness and severity which old portraits so invariably put on; as if
  • they were the ghosts, rather than the pictures, of departed worthies,
  • and were gazing with harsh and intolerant criticism at the pursuits
  • and enjoyments of living men.
  • [Illustration: The Governor's Breastplate]
  • At about the centre of the oaken panels, that lined the hall, was
  • suspended a suit of mail, not, like the pictures, an ancestral relic,
  • but of the most modern date; for it had been manufactured by a skilful
  • armorer in London, the same year in which Governor Bellingham came
  • over to New England. There was a steel head-piece, a cuirass, a
  • gorget, and greaves, with a pair of gauntlets and a sword hanging
  • beneath; all, and especially the helmet and breastplate, so highly
  • burnished as to glow with white radiance, and scatter an illumination
  • everywhere about upon the floor. This bright panoply was not meant for
  • mere idle show, but had been worn by the Governor on many a solemn
  • muster and training field, and had glittered, moreover, at the head of
  • a regiment in the Pequod war. For, though bred a lawyer, and
  • accustomed to speak of Bacon, Coke, Noye, and Finch as his
  • professional associates, the exigencies of this new country had
  • transformed Governor Bellingham into a soldier, as well as a statesman
  • and ruler.
  • Little Pearl—who was as greatly pleased with the gleaming armor as
  • she had been with the glittering frontispiece of the house—spent some
  • time looking into the polished mirror of the breastplate.
  • “Mother,” cried she, “I see you here. Look! Look!”
  • Hester looked, by way of humoring the child; and she saw that, owing
  • to the peculiar effect of this convex mirror, the scarlet letter was
  • represented in exaggerated and gigantic proportions, so as to be
  • greatly the most prominent feature of her appearance. In truth, she
  • seemed absolutely hidden behind it. Pearl pointed upward, also, at a
  • similar picture in the head-piece; smiling at her mother, with the
  • elfish intelligence that was so familiar an expression on her small
  • physiognomy. That look of naughty merriment was likewise reflected in
  • the mirror, with so much breadth and intensity of effect, that it made
  • Hester Prynne feel as if it could not be the image of her own child,
  • but of an imp who was seeking to mould itself into Pearl's shape.
  • “Come along, Pearl,” said she, drawing her away. “Come and look into
  • this fair garden. It may be we shall see flowers there; more beautiful
  • ones than we find in the woods.”
  • Pearl, accordingly, ran to the bow-window, at the farther end of the
  • hall, and looked along the vista of a garden-walk, carpeted with
  • closely shaven grass, and bordered with some rude and immature attempt
  • at shrubbery. But the proprietor appeared already to have
  • relinquished, as hopeless, the effort to perpetuate on this side of
  • the Atlantic, in a hard soil and amid the close struggle for
  • subsistence, the native English taste for ornamental gardening.
  • Cabbages grew in plain sight; and a pumpkin-vine, rooted at some
  • distance, had run across the intervening space, and deposited one of
  • its gigantic products directly beneath the hall-window; as if to warn
  • the Governor that this great lump of vegetable gold was as rich an
  • ornament as New England earth would offer him. There were a few
  • rose-bushes, however, and a number of apple-trees, probably the
  • descendants of those planted by the Reverend Mr. Blackstone, the first
  • settler of the peninsula; that half-mythological personage, who rides
  • through our early annals, seated on the back of a bull.
  • Pearl, seeing the rose-bushes, began to cry for a red rose, and would
  • not be pacified.
  • “Hush, child, hush!” said her mother, earnestly. “Do not cry, dear
  • little Pearl! I hear voices in the garden. The Governor is coming, and
  • gentlemen along with him!”
  • In fact, adown the vista of the garden avenue a number of persons were
  • seen approaching towards the house. Pearl, in utter scorn of her
  • mother's attempt to quiet her, gave an eldritch scream, and then
  • became silent; not from any notion of obedience, but because the quick
  • and mobile curiosity of her disposition was excited by the appearance
  • of these new personages.
  • [Illustration]
  • VIII.
  • THE ELF-CHILD AND THE MINISTER.
  • Governor Bellingham, in a loose gown and easy cap,—such as elderly
  • gentlemen loved to endue themselves with, in their domestic
  • privacy,—walked foremost, and appeared to be showing off his estate,
  • and expatiating on his projected improvements. The wide circumference
  • of an elaborate ruff, beneath his gray beard, in the antiquated
  • fashion of King James's reign, caused his head to look not a little
  • like that of John the Baptist in a charger. The impression made by his
  • aspect, so rigid and severe, and frost-bitten with more than autumnal
  • age, was hardly in keeping with the appliances of worldly enjoyment
  • wherewith he had evidently done his utmost to surround himself. But it
  • is an error to suppose that our grave forefathers—though accustomed
  • to speak and think of human existence as a state merely of trial and
  • warfare, and though unfeignedly prepared to sacrifice goods and life
  • at the behest of duty—made it a matter of conscience to reject such
  • means of comfort, or even luxury, as lay fairly within their grasp.
  • This creed was never taught, for instance, by the venerable pastor,
  • John Wilson, whose beard, white as a snow-drift, was seen over
  • Governor Bellingham's shoulder; while its wearer suggested that pears
  • and peaches might yet be naturalized in the New England climate, and
  • that purple grapes might possibly be compelled to nourish, against the
  • sunny garden-wall. The old clergyman, nurtured at the rich bosom of
  • the English Church, had a long-established and legitimate taste for
  • all good and comfortable things; and however stern he might show
  • himself in the pulpit, or in his public reproof of such transgressions
  • as that of Hester Prynne, still the genial benevolence of his private
  • life had won him warmer affection than was accorded to any of his
  • professional contemporaries.
  • Behind the Governor and Mr. Wilson came two other guests: one the
  • Reverend Arthur Dimmesdale, whom the reader may remember as having
  • taken a brief and reluctant part in the scene of Hester Prynne's
  • disgrace; and, in close companionship with him, old Roger
  • Chillingworth, a person of great skill in physic, who, for two or
  • three years past, had been settled in the town. It was understood that
  • this learned man was the physician as well as friend of the young
  • minister, whose health had severely suffered, of late, by his too
  • unreserved self-sacrifice to the labors and duties of the pastoral
  • relation.
  • The Governor, in advance of his visitors, ascended one or two steps,
  • and, throwing open the leaves of the great hall-window, found himself
  • close to little Pearl. The shadow of the curtain fell on Hester
  • Prynne, and partially concealed her.
  • “What have we here?” said Governor Bellingham, looking with surprise
  • at the scarlet little figure before him. “I profess, I have never seen
  • the like, since my days of vanity, in old King James's time, when I
  • was wont to esteem it a high favor to be admitted to a court mask!
  • There used to be a swarm of these small apparitions, in holiday time;
  • and we called them children of the Lord of Misrule. But how gat such a
  • guest into my hall?”
  • “Ay, indeed!” cried good old Mr. Wilson. “What little bird of scarlet
  • plumage may this be? Methinks I have seen just such figures, when the
  • sun has been shining through a richly painted window, and tracing out
  • the golden and crimson images across the floor. But that was in the
  • old land. Prithee, young one, who art thou, and what has ailed thy
  • mother to bedizen thee in this strange fashion? Art thou a Christian
  • child,—ha? Dost know thy catechism? Or art thou one of those naughty
  • elfs or fairies, whom we thought to have left behind us, with other
  • relics of Papistry, in merry old England?”
  • “I am mother's child,” answered the scarlet vision, “and my name is
  • Pearl!”
  • “Pearl?—Ruby, rather!—or Coral!—or Red Rose, at the very least,
  • judging from thy hue!” responded the old minister, putting forth his
  • hand in a vain attempt to pat little Pearl on the cheek. “But where is
  • this mother of thine? Ah! I see,” he added; and, turning to Governor
  • Bellingham, whispered, “This is the selfsame child of whom we have
  • held speech together; and behold here the unhappy woman, Hester
  • Prynne, her mother!”
  • “Sayest thou so?” cried the Governor. “Nay, we might have judged that
  • such a child's mother must needs be a scarlet woman, and a worthy type
  • of her of Babylon! But she comes at a good time; and we will look into
  • this matter forthwith.”
  • Governor Bellingham stepped through the window into the hall, followed
  • by his three guests.
  • “Hester Prynne,” said he, fixing his naturally stern regard on the
  • wearer of the scarlet letter, “there hath been much question
  • concerning thee, of late. The point hath been weightily discussed,
  • whether we, that are of authority and influence, do well discharge our
  • consciences by trusting an immortal soul, such as there is in yonder
  • child, to the guidance of one who hath stumbled and fallen, amid the
  • pitfalls of this world. Speak thou, the child's own mother! Were it
  • not, thinkest thou, for thy little one's temporal and eternal welfare
  • that she be taken out of thy charge, and clad soberly, and disciplined
  • strictly, and instructed in the truths of heaven and earth? What canst
  • thou do for the child, in this kind?”
  • “I can teach my little Pearl what I have learned from this!” answered
  • Hester Prynne, laying her finger on the red token.
  • “Woman, it is thy badge of shame!” replied the stern magistrate. “It
  • is because of the stain which that letter indicates, that we would
  • transfer thy child to other hands.”
  • “Nevertheless,” said the mother, calmly, though growing more pale,
  • “this badge hath taught me—it daily teaches me—it is teaching me at
  • this moment—lessons whereof my child may be the wiser and better,
  • albeit they can profit nothing to myself.”
  • “We will judge warily,” said Bellingham, “and look well what we are
  • about to do. Good Master Wilson, I pray you, examine this
  • Pearl,—since that is her name,—and see whether she hath had such
  • Christian nurture as befits a child of her age.”
  • The old minister seated himself in an arm-chair, and made an effort to
  • draw Pearl betwixt his knees. But the child, unaccustomed to the touch
  • or familiarity of any but her mother, escaped through the open window,
  • and stood on the upper step, looking like a wild tropical bird, of
  • rich plumage, ready to take flight into the upper air. Mr. Wilson, not
  • a little astonished at this outbreak,—for he was a grandfatherly sort
  • of personage, and usually a vast favorite with children,—essayed,
  • however, to proceed with the examination.
  • “Pearl,” said he, with great solemnity, “thou must take heed to
  • instruction, that so, in due season, thou mayest wear in thy bosom the
  • pearl of great price. Canst thou tell me, my child, who made thee?”
  • Now Pearl knew well enough who made her; for Hester Prynne, the
  • daughter of a pious home, very soon after her talk with the child
  • about her Heavenly Father, had begun to inform her of those truths
  • which the human spirit, at whatever stage of immaturity, imbibes with
  • such eager interest. Pearl, therefore, so large were the attainments
  • of her three years' lifetime, could have borne a fair examination in
  • the New England Primer, or the first column of the Westminster
  • Catechisms, although unacquainted with the outward form of either of
  • those celebrated works. But that perversity which all children have
  • more or less of, and of which little Pearl had a tenfold portion, now,
  • at the most inopportune moment, took thorough possession of her, and
  • closed her lips, or impelled her to speak words amiss. After putting
  • her finger in her mouth, with many ungracious refusals to answer good
  • Mr. Wilson's question, the child finally announced that she had not
  • been made at all, but had been plucked by her mother off the bush of
  • wild roses that grew by the prison-door.
  • This fantasy was probably suggested by the near proximity of the
  • Governor's red roses, as Pearl stood outside of the window; together
  • with her recollection of the prison rose-bush, which she had passed in
  • coming hither.
  • Old Roger Chillingworth, with a smile on his face, whispered something
  • in the young clergyman's ear. Hester Prynne looked at the man of
  • skill, and even then, with her fate hanging in the balance, was
  • startled to perceive what a change had come over his features,—how
  • much uglier they were,—how his dark complexion seemed to have grown
  • duskier, and his figure more misshapen,—since the days when she had
  • familiarly known him. She met his eyes for an instant, but was
  • immediately constrained to give all her attention to the scene now
  • going forward.
  • “This is awful!” cried the Governor, slowly recovering from the
  • astonishment into which Pearl's response had thrown him. “Here is a
  • child of three years old, and she cannot tell who made her! Without
  • question, she is equally in the dark as to her soul, its present
  • depravity, and future destiny! Methinks, gentlemen, we need inquire no
  • further.”
  • Hester caught hold of Pearl, and drew her forcibly into her arms,
  • confronting the old Puritan magistrate with almost a fierce
  • expression. Alone in the world, cast off by it, and with this sole
  • treasure to keep her heart alive, she felt that she possessed
  • indefeasible rights against the world, and was ready to defend them to
  • the death.
  • “God gave me the child!” cried she. “He gave her in requital of all
  • things else, which ye had taken from me. She is my happiness!—she is
  • my torture, none the less! Pearl keeps me here in life! Pearl punishes
  • me too! See ye not, she is the scarlet letter, only capable of being
  • loved, and so endowed with a million-fold the power of retribution for
  • my sin? Ye shall not take her! I will die first!”
  • [Illustration: “Look thou to it! I will not lose the child!”]
  • “My poor woman,” said the not unkind old minister, “the child shall be
  • well cared for!—far better than thou canst do it!”
  • “God gave her into my keeping,” repeated Hester Prynne, raising her
  • voice almost to a shriek. “I will not give her up!”—And here, by a
  • sudden impulse, she turned to the young clergyman, Mr. Dimmesdale, at
  • whom, up to this moment, she had seemed hardly so much as once to
  • direct her eyes.—“Speak thou for me!” cried she. “Thou wast my
  • pastor, and hadst charge of my soul, and knowest me better than these
  • men can. I will not lose the child! Speak for me! Thou knowest,—for
  • thou hast sympathies which these men lack!—thou knowest what is in my
  • heart, and what are a mother's rights, and how much the stronger they
  • are, when that mother has but her child and the scarlet letter! Look
  • thou to it! I will not lose the child! Look to it!”
  • At this wild and singular appeal, which indicated that Hester Prynne's
  • situation had provoked her to little less than madness, the young
  • minister at once came forward, pale, and holding his hand over his
  • heart, as was his custom whenever his peculiarly nervous temperament
  • was thrown into agitation. He looked now more care-worn and emaciated
  • than as we described him at the scene of Hester's public ignominy; and
  • whether it were his failing health, or whatever the cause might be,
  • his large dark eyes had a world of pain in their troubled and
  • melancholy depth.
  • “There is truth in what she says,” began the minister, with a voice
  • sweet, tremulous, but powerful, insomuch that the hall re-echoed, and
  • the hollow armor rang with it,—“truth in what Hester says, and in the
  • feeling which inspires her! God gave her the child, and gave her, too,
  • an instinctive knowledge of its nature and requirements,—both
  • seemingly so peculiar,—which no other mortal being can possess. And,
  • moreover, is there not a quality of awful sacredness in the relation
  • between this mother and this child?”
  • “Ay!—how is that, good Master Dimmesdale?” interrupted the Governor.
  • “Make that plain, I pray you!”
  • “It must be even so,” resumed the minister. “For, if we deem it
  • otherwise, do we not thereby say that the Heavenly Father, the Creator
  • of all flesh, hath lightly recognized a deed of sin, and made of no
  • account the distinction between unhallowed lust and holy love? This
  • child of its father's guilt and its mother's shame hath come from the
  • hand of God, to work in many ways upon her heart, who pleads so
  • earnestly, and with such bitterness of spirit, the right to keep her.
  • It was meant for a blessing; for the one blessing of her life! It was
  • meant, doubtless, as the mother herself hath told us, for a
  • retribution too; a torture to be felt at many an unthought-of moment;
  • a pang, a sting, an ever-recurring agony, in the midst of a troubled
  • joy! Hath she not expressed this thought in the garb of the poor
  • child, so forcibly reminding us of that red symbol which sears her
  • bosom?”
  • “Well said, again!” cried good Mr. Wilson. “I feared the woman had no
  • better thought than to make a mountebank of her child!”
  • “O, not so!—not so!” continued Mr. Dimmesdale. “She recognizes,
  • believe me, the solemn miracle which God hath wrought, in the
  • existence of that child. And may she feel, too,—what, methinks, is
  • the very truth,—that this boon was meant, above all things else, to
  • keep the mother's soul alive, and to preserve her from blacker depths
  • of sin into which Satan might else have sought to plunge her!
  • Therefore it is good for this poor, sinful woman that she hath an
  • infant immortality, a being capable of eternal joy or sorrow,
  • confided to her care,—to be trained up by her to righteousness,—to
  • remind her, at every moment, of her fall,—but yet to teach her, as it
  • were by the Creator's sacred pledge, that, if she bring the child to
  • heaven, the child also will bring its parent thither! Herein is the
  • sinful mother happier than the sinful father. For Hester Prynne's
  • sake, then, and no less for the poor child's sake, let us leave them
  • as Providence hath seen fit to place them!”
  • “You speak, my friend, with a strange earnestness,” said old Roger
  • Chillingworth, smiling at him.
  • “And there is a weighty import in what my young brother hath spoken,”
  • added the Reverend Mr. Wilson. “What say you, worshipful Master
  • Bellingham? Hath he not pleaded well for the poor woman?”
  • “Indeed hath he,” answered the magistrate, “and hath adduced such
  • arguments, that we will even leave the matter as it now stands; so
  • long, at least, as there shall be no further scandal in the woman.
  • Care must be had, nevertheless, to put the child to due and stated
  • examination in the catechism, at thy hands or Master Dimmesdale's.
  • Moreover, at a proper season, the tithing-men must take heed that she
  • go both to school and to meeting.”
  • The young minister, on ceasing to speak, had withdrawn a few steps
  • from the group, and stood with his face partially concealed in the
  • heavy folds of the window-curtain; while the shadow of his figure,
  • which the sunlight cast upon the floor, was tremulous with the
  • vehemence of his appeal. Pearl, that wild and flighty little elf,
  • stole softly towards him, and taking his hand in the grasp of both her
  • own, laid her cheek against it; a caress so tender, and withal so
  • unobtrusive, that her mother, who was looking on, asked herself,—“Is
  • that my Pearl?” Yet she knew that there was love in the child's heart,
  • although it mostly revealed itself in passion, and hardly twice in her
  • lifetime had been softened by such gentleness as now. The
  • minister,—for, save the long-sought regards of woman, nothing is
  • sweeter than these marks of childish preference, accorded
  • spontaneously by a spiritual instinct, and therefore seeming to imply
  • in us something truly worthy to be loved,—the minister looked round,
  • laid his hand on the child's head, hesitated an instant, and then
  • kissed her brow. Little Pearl's unwonted mood of sentiment lasted no
  • longer; she laughed, and went capering down the hall, so airily, that
  • old Mr. Wilson raised a question whether even her tiptoes touched the
  • floor.
  • “The little baggage hath witchcraft in her, I profess,” said he to Mr.
  • Dimmesdale. “She needs no old woman's broomstick to fly withal!”
  • “A strange child!” remarked old Roger Chillingworth. “It is easy to
  • see the mother's part in her. Would it be beyond a philosopher's
  • research, think ye, gentlemen, to analyze that child's nature, and,
  • from its make and mould, to give a shrewd guess at the father?”
  • “Nay; it would be sinful, in such a question, to follow the clew of
  • profane philosophy,” said Mr. Wilson. “Better to fast and pray upon
  • it; and still better, it may be, to leave the mystery as we find it,
  • unless Providence reveal it of its own accord. Thereby, every good
  • Christian man hath a title to show a father's kindness towards the
  • poor, deserted babe.”
  • The affair being so satisfactorily concluded, Hester Prynne, with
  • Pearl, departed from the house. As they descended the steps, it is
  • averred that the lattice of a chamber-window was thrown open, and
  • forth into the sunny day was thrust the face of Mistress Hibbins,
  • Governor Bellingham's bitter-tempered sister, and the same who, a few
  • years later, was executed as a witch.
  • “Hist, hist!” said she, while her ill-omened physiognomy seemed to
  • cast a shadow over the cheerful newness of the house. “Wilt thou go
  • with us to-night? There will be a merry company in the forest; and I
  • wellnigh promised the Black Man that comely Hester Prynne should make
  • one.”
  • “Make my excuse to him, so please you!” answered Hester, with a
  • triumphant smile. “I must tarry at home, and keep watch over my little
  • Pearl. Had they taken her from me, I would willingly have gone with
  • thee into the forest, and signed my name in the Black Man's book too,
  • and that with mine own blood!”
  • “We shall have thee there anon!” said the witch-lady, frowning, as she
  • drew back her head.
  • But here—if we suppose this interview betwixt Mistress Hibbins and
  • Hester Prynne to be authentic, and not a parable—was already an
  • illustration of the young minister's argument against sundering the
  • relation of a fallen mother to the offspring of her frailty. Even thus
  • early had the child saved her from Satan's snare.
  • [Illustration]
  • [Illustration]
  • IX.
  • THE LEECH.
  • Under the appellation of Roger Chillingworth, the reader will
  • remember, was hidden another name, which its former wearer had
  • resolved should never more be spoken. It has been related, how, in the
  • crowd that witnessed Hester Prynne's ignominious exposure, stood a
  • man, elderly, travel-worn, who, just emerging from the perilous
  • wilderness, beheld the woman, in whom he hoped to find embodied the
  • warmth and cheerfulness of home, set up as a type of sin before the
  • people. Her matronly fame was trodden under all men's feet. Infamy was
  • babbling around her in the public market-place. For her kindred,
  • should the tidings ever reach them, and for the companions of her
  • unspotted life, there remained nothing but the contagion of her
  • dishonor; which would not fail to be distributed in strict accordance
  • and proportion with the intimacy and sacredness of their previous
  • relationship. Then why—since the choice was with himself—should the
  • individual, whose connection with the fallen woman had been the most
  • intimate and sacred of them all, come forward to vindicate his claim
  • to an inheritance so little desirable? He resolved not to be pilloried
  • beside her on her pedestal of shame. Unknown to all but Hester Prynne,
  • and possessing the lock and key of her silence, he chose to withdraw
  • his name from the roll of mankind, and, as regarded his former ties
  • and interests, to vanish out of life as completely as if he indeed lay
  • at the bottom of the ocean, whither rumor had long ago consigned him.
  • This purpose once effected, new interests would immediately spring up,
  • and likewise a new purpose; dark, it is true, if not guilty, but of
  • force enough to engage the full strength of his faculties.
  • In pursuance of this resolve, he took up his residence in the Puritan
  • town, as Roger Chillingworth, without other introduction than the
  • learning and intelligence of which he possessed more than a common
  • measure. As his studies, at a previous period of his life, had made
  • him extensively acquainted with the medical science of the day, it was
  • as a physician that he presented himself, and as such was cordially
  • received. Skilful men, of the medical and chirurgical profession, were
  • of rare occurrence in the colony. They seldom, it would appear,
  • partook of the religious zeal that brought other emigrants across the
  • Atlantic. In their researches into the human frame, it may be that the
  • higher and more subtile faculties of such men were materialized, and
  • that they lost the spiritual view of existence amid the intricacies of
  • that wondrous mechanism, which seemed to involve art enough to
  • comprise all of life within itself. At all events, the health of the
  • good town of Boston, so far as medicine had aught to do with it, had
  • hitherto lain in the guardianship of an aged deacon and apothecary,
  • whose piety and godly deportment were stronger testimonials in his
  • favor than any that he could have produced in the shape of a diploma.
  • The only surgeon was one who combined the occasional exercise of that
  • noble art with the daily and habitual flourish of a razor. To such a
  • professional body Roger Chillingworth was a brilliant acquisition. He
  • soon manifested his familiarity with the ponderous and imposing
  • machinery of antique physic; in which every remedy contained a
  • multitude of far-fetched and heterogeneous ingredients, as elaborately
  • compounded as if the proposed result had been the Elixir of Life. In
  • his Indian captivity, moreover, he had gained much knowledge of the
  • properties of native herbs and roots; nor did he conceal from his
  • patients, that these simple medicines, Nature's boon to the untutored
  • savage, had quite as large a share of his own confidence as the
  • European pharmacopœia, which so many learned doctors had spent
  • centuries in elaborating.
  • This learned stranger was exemplary, as regarded, at least, the
  • outward forms of a religious life, and, early after his arrival, had
  • chosen for his spiritual guide the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale. The young
  • divine, whose scholar-like renown still lived in Oxford, was
  • considered by his more fervent admirers as little less than a
  • heaven-ordained apostle, destined, should he live and labor for the
  • ordinary term of life, to do as great deeds for the now feeble New
  • England Church, as the early Fathers had achieved for the infancy of
  • the Christian faith. About this period, however, the health of Mr.
  • Dimmesdale had evidently begun to fail. By those best acquainted with
  • his habits, the paleness of the young minister's cheek was accounted
  • for by his too earnest devotion to study, his scrupulous fulfilment of
  • parochial duty, and, more than all, by the fasts and vigils of which
  • he made a frequent practice, in order to keep the grossness of this
  • earthly state from clogging and obscuring his spiritual lamp. Some
  • declared, that, if Mr. Dimmesdale were really going to die, it was
  • cause enough, that the world was not worthy to be any longer trodden
  • by his feet. He himself, on the other hand, with characteristic
  • humility, avowed his belief, that, if Providence should see fit to
  • remove him, it would be because of his own unworthiness to perform its
  • humblest mission here on earth. With all this difference of opinion as
  • to the cause of his decline, there could be no question of the fact.
  • His form grew emaciated; his voice, though still rich and sweet, had a
  • certain melancholy prophecy of decay in it; he was often observed, on
  • any slight alarm or other sudden accident, to put his hand over his
  • heart, with first a flush and then a paleness, indicative of pain.
  • Such was the young clergyman's condition, and so imminent the prospect
  • that his dawning light would be extinguished, all untimely, when Roger
  • Chillingworth made his advent to the town. His first entry on the
  • scene, few people could tell whence, dropping down, as it were, out of
  • the sky, or starting from the nether earth, had an aspect of mystery,
  • which was easily heightened to the miraculous. He was now known to be
  • a man of skill; it was observed that he gathered herbs, and the
  • blossoms of wild-flowers, and dug up roots, and plucked off twigs from
  • the forest-trees, like one acquainted with hidden virtues in what was
  • valueless to common eyes. He was heard to speak of Sir Kenelm Digby,
  • and other famous men,—whose scientific attainments were esteemed
  • hardly less than supernatural,—as having been his correspondents or
  • associates. Why, with such rank in the learned world, had he come
  • hither? What could he, whose sphere was in great cities, be seeking in
  • the wilderness? In answer to this query, a rumor gained ground,—and,
  • however absurd, was entertained by some very sensible people,—that
  • Heaven had wrought an absolute miracle, by transporting an eminent
  • Doctor of Physic, from a German university, bodily through the air,
  • and setting him down at the door of Mr. Dimmesdale's study!
  • Individuals of wiser faith, indeed, who knew that Heaven promotes its
  • purposes without aiming at the stage-effect of what is called
  • miraculous interposition, were inclined to see a providential hand in
  • Roger Chillingworth's so opportune arrival.
  • This idea was countenanced by the strong interest which the physician
  • ever manifested in the young clergyman; he attached himself to him as
  • a parishioner, and sought to win a friendly regard and confidence from
  • his naturally reserved sensibility. He expressed great alarm at his
  • pastor's state of health, but was anxious to attempt the cure, and, if
  • early undertaken, seemed not despondent of a favorable result. The
  • elders, the deacons, the motherly dames, and the young and fair
  • maidens, of Mr. Dimmesdale's flock, were alike importunate that he
  • should make trial of the physician's frankly offered skill. Mr.
  • Dimmesdale gently repelled their entreaties.
  • “I need no medicine,” said he.
  • But how could the young minister say so, when, with every successive
  • Sabbath, his cheek was paler and thinner, and his voice more tremulous
  • than before,—when it had now become a constant habit, rather than a
  • casual gesture, to press his hand over his heart? Was he weary of his
  • labors? Did he wish to die? These questions were solemnly propounded
  • to Mr. Dimmesdale by the elder ministers of Boston and the deacons of
  • his church, who, to use their own phrase, “dealt with him” on the sin
  • of rejecting the aid which Providence so manifestly held out. He
  • listened in silence, and finally promised to confer with the
  • physician.
  • “Were it God's will,” said the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale, when, in
  • fulfilment of this pledge, he requested old Roger Chillingworth's
  • professional advice, “I could be well content, that my labors, and my
  • sorrows, and my sins, and my pains, should shortly end with me, and
  • what is earthly of them be buried in my grave, and the spiritual go
  • with me to my eternal state, rather than that you should put your
  • skill to the proof in my behalf.”
  • “Ah,” replied Roger Chillingworth, with that quietness which, whether
  • imposed or natural, marked all his deportment, “it is thus that a
  • young clergyman is apt to speak. Youthful men, not having taken a deep
  • root, give up their hold of life so easily! And saintly men, who walk
  • with God on earth, would fain be away, to walk with him on the golden
  • pavements of the New Jerusalem.”
  • “Nay,” rejoined the young minister, putting his hand to his heart,
  • with a flush of pain flitting over his brow, “were I worthier to walk
  • there, I could be better content to toil here.”
  • “Good men ever interpret themselves too meanly,” said the physician.
  • [Illustration: The Minister and Leech]
  • In this manner, the mysterious old Roger Chillingworth became the
  • medical adviser of the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale. As not only the
  • disease interested the physician, but he was strongly moved to look
  • into the character and qualities of the patient, these two men, so
  • different in age, came gradually to spend much time together. For the
  • sake of the minister's health, and to enable the leech to gather
  • plants with healing balm in them, they took long walks on the
  • sea-shore, or in the forest; mingling various talk with the plash and
  • murmur of the waves, and the solemn wind-anthem among the tree-tops.
  • Often, likewise, one was the guest of the other, in his place of
  • study and retirement. There was a fascination for the minister in the
  • company of the man of science, in whom he recognized an intellectual
  • cultivation of no moderate depth or scope; together with a range and
  • freedom of ideas, that he would have vainly looked for among the
  • members of his own profession. In truth, he was startled, if not
  • shocked, to find this attribute in the physician. Mr. Dimmesdale was a
  • true priest, a true religionist, with the reverential sentiment
  • largely developed, and an order of mind that impelled itself
  • powerfully along the track of a creed, and wore its passage
  • continually deeper with the lapse of time. In no state of society
  • would he have been what is called a man of liberal views; it would
  • always be essential to his peace to feel the pressure of a faith about
  • him, supporting, while it confined him within its iron framework. Not
  • the less, however, though with a tremulous enjoyment, did he feel the
  • occasional relief of looking at the universe through the medium of
  • another kind of intellect than those with which he habitually held
  • converse. It was as if a window were thrown open, admitting a freer
  • atmosphere into the close and stifled study, where his life was
  • wasting itself away, amid lamplight, or obstructed day-beams, and the
  • musty fragrance, be it sensual or moral, that exhales from books. But
  • the air was too fresh and chill to be long breathed with comfort. So
  • the minister, and the physician with him, withdrew again within the
  • limits of what their church defined as orthodox.
  • Thus Roger Chillingworth scrutinized his patient carefully, both as he
  • saw him in his ordinary life, keeping an accustomed pathway in the
  • range of thoughts familiar to him, and as he appeared when thrown
  • amidst other moral scenery, the novelty of which might call out
  • something new to the surface of his character. He deemed it essential,
  • it would seem, to know the man, before attempting to do him good.
  • Wherever there is a heart and an intellect, the diseases of the
  • physical frame are tinged with the peculiarities of these. In Arthur
  • Dimmesdale, thought and imagination were so active, and sensibility so
  • intense, that the bodily infirmity would be likely to have its
  • groundwork there. So Roger Chillingworth—the man of skill, the kind
  • and friendly physician—strove to go deep into his patient's bosom,
  • delving among his principles, prying into his recollections, and
  • probing everything with a cautious touch, like a treasure-seeker in a
  • dark cavern. Few secrets can escape an investigator, who has
  • opportunity and license to undertake such a quest, and skill to follow
  • it up. A man burdened with a secret should especially avoid the
  • intimacy of his physician. If the latter possess native sagacity, and
  • a nameless something more,—let us call it intuition; if he show no
  • intrusive egotism, nor disagreeably prominent characteristics of his
  • own; if he have the power, which must be born with him, to bring his
  • mind into such affinity with his patient's, that this last shall
  • unawares have spoken what he imagines himself only to have thought; if
  • such revelations be received without tumult, and acknowledged not so
  • often by an uttered sympathy as by silence, an inarticulate breath,
  • and here and there a word, to indicate that all is understood; if to
  • these qualifications of a confidant be joined the advantages afforded
  • by his recognized character as a physician;—then, at some inevitable
  • moment, will the soul of the sufferer be dissolved, and flow forth in
  • a dark, but transparent stream, bringing all its mysteries into the
  • daylight.
  • Roger Chillingworth possessed all, or most, of the attributes above
  • enumerated. Nevertheless, time went on; a kind of intimacy, as we have
  • said, grew up between these two cultivated minds, which had as wide a
  • field as the whole sphere of human thought and study, to meet upon;
  • they discussed every topic of ethics and religion, of public affairs
  • and private character; they talked much, on both sides, of matters
  • that seemed personal to themselves; and yet no secret, such as the
  • physician fancied must exist there, ever stole out of the minister's
  • consciousness into his companion's ear. The latter had his suspicions,
  • indeed, that even the nature of Mr. Dimmesdale's bodily disease had
  • never fairly been revealed to him. It was a strange reserve!
  • After a time, at a hint from Roger Chillingworth, the friends of Mr.
  • Dimmesdale effected an arrangement by which the two were lodged in the
  • same house; so that every ebb and flow of the minister's life-tide
  • might pass under the eye of his anxious and attached physician. There
  • was much joy throughout the town, when this greatly desirable object
  • was attained. It was held to be the best possible measure for the
  • young clergyman's welfare; unless, indeed, as often urged by such as
  • felt authorized to do so, he had selected some one of the many
  • blooming damsels, spiritually devoted to him, to become his devoted
  • wife. This latter step, however, there was no present prospect that
  • Arthur Dimmesdale would be prevailed upon to take; he rejected all
  • suggestions of the kind, as if priestly celibacy were one of his
  • articles of church-discipline. Doomed by his own choice, therefore, as
  • Mr. Dimmesdale so evidently was, to eat his unsavory morsel always at
  • another's board, and endure the life-long chill which must be his lot
  • who seeks to warm himself only at another's fireside, it truly seemed
  • that this sagacious, experienced, benevolent old physician, with his
  • concord of paternal and reverential love for the young pastor, was the
  • very man, of all mankind, to be constantly within reach of his voice.
  • The new abode of the two friends was with a pious widow, of good
  • social rank, who dwelt in a house covering pretty nearly the site on
  • which the venerable structure of King's Chapel has since been built.
  • It had the graveyard, originally Isaac Johnson's home-field, on one
  • side, and so was well adapted to call up serious reflections, suited
  • to their respective employments, in both minister and man of physic.
  • The motherly care of the good widow assigned to Mr. Dimmesdale a front
  • apartment, with a sunny exposure, and heavy window-curtains, to create
  • a noontide shadow, when desirable. The walls were hung round with
  • tapestry, said to be from the Gobelin looms, and, at all events,
  • representing the Scriptural story of David and Bathsheba, and Nathan
  • the Prophet, in colors still unfaded, but which made the fair woman
  • of the scene almost as grimly picturesque as the woe-denouncing seer.
  • Here the pale clergyman piled up his library, rich with
  • parchment-bound folios of the Fathers, and the lore of Rabbis, and
  • monkish erudition, of which the Protestant divines, even while they
  • vilified and decried that class of writers, were yet constrained often
  • to avail themselves. On the other side of the house old Roger
  • Chillingworth arranged his study and laboratory; not such as a modern
  • man of science would reckon even tolerably complete, but provided with
  • a distilling apparatus, and the means of compounding drugs and
  • chemicals, which the practised alchemist knew well how to turn to
  • purpose. With such commodiousness of situation, these two learned
  • persons sat themselves down, each in his own domain, yet familiarly
  • passing from one apartment to the other, and bestowing a mutual and
  • not incurious inspection into one another's business.
  • And the Reverend Arthur Dimmesdale's best discerning friends, as we
  • have intimated, very reasonably imagined that the hand of Providence
  • had done all this, for the purpose—besought in so many public, and
  • domestic, and secret prayers—of restoring the young minister to
  • health. But—it must now be said—another portion of the community had
  • latterly begun to take its own view of the relation betwixt Mr.
  • Dimmesdale and the mysterious old physician. When an uninstructed
  • multitude attempts to see with its eyes, it is exceedingly apt to be
  • deceived. When, however, it forms its judgment, as it usually does, on
  • the intuitions of its great and warm heart, the conclusions thus
  • attained are often so profound and so unerring, as to possess the
  • character of truths supernaturally revealed. The people, in the case
  • of which we speak, could justify its prejudice against Roger
  • Chillingworth by no fact or argument worthy of serious refutation.
  • There was an aged handicraftsman, it is true, who had been a citizen
  • of London at the period of Sir Thomas Overbury's murder, now some
  • thirty years agone; he testified to having seen the physician, under
  • some other name, which the narrator of the story had now forgotten, in
  • company with Doctor Forman, the famous old conjurer, who was
  • implicated in the affair of Overbury. Two or three individuals hinted,
  • that the man of skill, during his Indian captivity, had enlarged his
  • medical attainments by joining in the incantations of the savage
  • priests; who were universally acknowledged to be powerful enchanters,
  • often performing seemingly miraculous cures by their skill in the
  • black art. A large number—and many of these were persons of such
  • sober sense and practical observation that their opinions would have
  • been valuable, in other matters—affirmed that Roger Chillingworth's
  • aspect had undergone a remarkable change while he had dwelt in town,
  • and especially since his abode with Mr. Dimmesdale. At first, his
  • expression had been calm, meditative, scholar-like. Now, there was
  • something ugly and evil in his face, which they had not previously
  • noticed, and which grew still the more obvious to sight, the oftener
  • they looked upon him. According to the vulgar idea, the fire in his
  • laboratory had been brought from the lower regions, and was fed with
  • infernal fuel; and so, as might be expected, his visage was getting
  • sooty with the smoke.
  • To sum up the matter, it grew to be a widely diffused opinion, that
  • the Reverend Arthur Dimmesdale, like many other personages of especial
  • sanctity, in all ages of the Christian world, was haunted either by
  • Satan himself, or Satan's emissary, in the guise of old Roger
  • Chillingworth. This diabolical agent had the Divine permission, for a
  • season, to burrow into the clergyman's intimacy, and plot against his
  • soul. No sensible man, it was confessed, could doubt on which side the
  • victory would turn. The people looked, with an unshaken hope, to see
  • the minister come forth out of the conflict, transfigured with the
  • glory which he would unquestionably win. Meanwhile, nevertheless, it
  • was sad to think of the perchance mortal agony through which he must
  • struggle towards his triumph.
  • Alas! to judge from the gloom and terror in the depths of the poor
  • minister's eyes, the battle was a sore one and the victory anything
  • but secure.
  • [Illustration]
  • [Illustration]
  • X.
  • THE LEECH AND HIS PATIENT.
  • Old Roger Chillingworth, throughout life, had been calm in
  • temperament, kindly, though not of warm affections, but ever, and in
  • all his relations with the world, a pure and upright man. He had begun
  • an investigation, as he imagined, with the severe and equal integrity
  • of a judge, desirous only of truth, even as if the question involved
  • no more than the air-drawn lines and figures of a geometrical problem,
  • instead of human passions, and wrongs inflicted on himself. But, as he
  • proceeded, a terrible fascination, a kind of fierce, though still
  • calm, necessity, seized the old man within its gripe, and never set
  • him free again, until he had done all its bidding. He now dug into the
  • poor clergyman's heart, like a miner searching for gold; or, rather,
  • like a sexton delving into a grave, possibly in quest of a jewel that
  • had been buried on the dead man's bosom, but likely to find nothing
  • save mortality and corruption. Alas for his own soul, if these were
  • what he sought!
  • Sometimes, a light glimmered out of the physician's eyes, burning blue
  • and ominous, like the reflection of a furnace, or, let us say, like
  • one of those gleams of ghastly fire that darted from Bunyan's awful
  • doorway in the hillside, and quivered on the pilgrim's face. The soil
  • where this dark miner was working had perchance shown indications that
  • encouraged him.
  • “This man,” said he, at one such moment, to himself, “pure as they
  • deem him,—all spiritual as he seems,—hath inherited a strong animal
  • nature from his father or his mother. Let us dig a little further in
  • the direction of this vein!”
  • Then, after long search into the minister's dim interior, and turning
  • over many precious materials, in the shape of high aspirations for the
  • welfare of his race, warm love of souls, pure sentiments, natural
  • piety, strengthened by thought and study, and illuminated by
  • revelation,—all of which invaluable gold was perhaps no better than
  • rubbish to the seeker,—he would turn back, discouraged, and begin his
  • quest towards another point. He groped along as stealthily, with as
  • cautious a tread, and as wary an outlook, as a thief entering a
  • chamber where a man lies only half asleep,—or, it may be, broad
  • awake,—with purpose to steal the very treasure which this man guards
  • as the apple of his eye. In spite of his premeditated carefulness, the
  • floor would now and then creak; his garments would rustle; the shadow
  • of his presence, in a forbidden proximity, would be thrown across his
  • victim. In other words, Mr. Dimmesdale, whose sensibility of nerve
  • often produced the effect of spiritual intuition, would become vaguely
  • aware that something inimical to his peace had thrust itself into
  • relation with him. But old Roger Chillingworth, too, had perceptions
  • that were almost intuitive; and when the minister threw his startled
  • eyes towards him, there the physician sat; his kind, watchful,
  • sympathizing, but never intrusive friend.
  • Yet Mr. Dimmesdale would perhaps have seen this individual's character
  • more perfectly, if a certain morbidness, to which, sick hearts are
  • liable, had not rendered him suspicious of all mankind. Trusting no
  • man as his friend, he could not recognize his enemy when the latter
  • actually appeared. He therefore still kept up a familiar intercourse
  • with him, daily receiving the old physician in his study; or visiting
  • the laboratory, and, for recreation's sake, watching the processes by
  • which weeds were converted into drugs of potency.
  • One day, leaning his forehead on his hand, and his elbow on the sill
  • of the open window, that looked towards the graveyard, he talked with
  • Roger Chillingworth, while the old man was examining a bundle of
  • unsightly plants.
  • “Where,” asked he, with a look askance at them,—for it was the
  • clergyman's peculiarity that he seldom, nowadays, looked straightforth
  • at any object, whether human or inanimate,—“where, my kind doctor,
  • did you gather those herbs, with such a dark, flabby leaf?”
  • “Even in the graveyard here at hand,” answered the physician,
  • continuing his employment. “They are new to me. I found them growing
  • on a grave, which bore no tombstone, nor other memorial of the dead
  • man, save these ugly weeds, that have taken upon themselves to keep
  • him in remembrance. They grew out of his heart, and typify, it may be,
  • some hideous secret that was buried with him, and which he had done
  • better to confess during his lifetime.”
  • “Perchance,” said Mr. Dimmesdale, “he earnestly desired it, but could
  • not.”
  • “And wherefore?” rejoined the physician. “Wherefore not; since all the
  • powers of nature call so earnestly for the confession of sin, that
  • these black weeds have sprung up out of a buried heart, to make
  • manifest an unspoken crime?”
  • “That, good Sir, is but a fantasy of yours,” replied the minister.
  • “There can be, if I forebode aright, no power, short of the Divine
  • mercy, to disclose, whether by uttered words, or by type or emblem,
  • the secrets that may be buried with a human heart. The heart, making
  • itself guilty of such secrets, must perforce hold them, until the day
  • when all hidden things shall be revealed. Nor have I so read or
  • interpreted Holy Writ, as to understand that the disclosure of human
  • thoughts and deeds, then to be made, is intended as a part of the
  • retribution. That, surely, were a shallow view of it. No; these
  • revelations, unless I greatly err, are meant merely to promote the
  • intellectual satisfaction of all intelligent beings, who will stand
  • waiting, on that day, to see the dark problem of this life made plain.
  • A knowledge of men's hearts will be needful to the completest solution
  • of that problem. And I conceive, moreover, that the hearts holding
  • such miserable secrets as you speak of will yield them up, at that
  • last day, not with reluctance, but with a joy unutterable.”
  • “Then why not reveal them here?” asked Roger Chillingworth, glancing
  • quietly aside at the minister. “Why should not the guilty ones sooner
  • avail themselves of this unutterable solace?”
  • “They mostly do,” said the clergyman, griping hard at his breast as if
  • afflicted with an importunate throb of pain. “Many, many a poor soul
  • hath given its confidence to me, not only on the death-bed, but while
  • strong in life, and fair in reputation. And ever, after such an
  • outpouring, O, what a relief have I witnessed in those sinful
  • brethren! even as in one who at last draws free air, after long
  • stifling with his own polluted breath. How can it be otherwise? Why
  • should a wretched man, guilty, we will say, of murder, prefer to keep
  • the dead corpse buried in his own heart, rather than fling it forth at
  • once, and let the universe take care of it!”
  • “Yet some men bury their secrets thus,” observed the calm physician.
  • “True; there are such men,” answered Mr. Dimmesdale. “But, not to
  • suggest more obvious reasons, it may be that they are kept silent by
  • the very constitution of their nature. Or,—can we not suppose
  • it?—guilty as they may be, retaining, nevertheless, a zeal for God's
  • glory and man's welfare, they shrink from displaying themselves black
  • and filthy in the view of men; because, thenceforward, no good can be
  • achieved by them; no evil of the past be redeemed by better service.
  • So, to their own unutterable torment, they go about among their
  • fellow-creatures, looking pure as new-fallen snow while their hearts
  • are all speckled and spotted with iniquity of which they cannot rid
  • themselves.”
  • “These men deceive themselves,” said Roger Chillingworth, with
  • somewhat more emphasis than usual, and making a slight gesture with
  • his forefinger. “They fear to take up the shame that rightfully
  • belongs to them. Their love for man, their zeal for God's
  • service,—these holy impulses may or may not coexist in their hearts
  • with the evil inmates to which their guilt has unbarred the door, and
  • which must needs propagate a hellish breed within them. But, if they
  • seek to glorify God, let them not lift heavenward their unclean hands!
  • If they would serve their fellow-men, let them do it by making
  • manifest the power and reality of conscience, in constraining them to
  • penitential self-abasement! Wouldst thou have me to believe, O wise
  • and pious friend, that a false show can be better—can be more for
  • God's glory, or man's welfare—than God's own truth? Trust me, such
  • men deceive themselves!”
  • “It may be so,” said the young clergyman, indifferently, as waiving a
  • discussion that he considered irrelevant or unseasonable. He had a
  • ready faculty, indeed, of escaping from any topic that agitated his
  • too sensitive and nervous temperament.—“But, now, I would ask of my
  • well-skilled physician, whether, in good sooth, he deems me to have
  • profited by his kindly care of this weak frame of mine?”
  • Before Roger Chillingworth could answer, they heard the clear, wild
  • laughter of a young child's voice, proceeding from the adjacent
  • burial-ground. Looking instinctively from the open window,—for it was
  • summer-time,—the minister beheld Hester Prynne and little Pearl
  • passing along the footpath that traversed the enclosure. Pearl looked
  • as beautiful as the day, but was in one of those moods of perverse
  • merriment which, whenever they occurred, seemed to remove her entirely
  • out of the sphere of sympathy or human contact. She now skipped
  • irreverently from one grave to another; until, coming to the broad,
  • flat, armorial tombstone of a departed worthy,—perhaps of Isaac
  • Johnson himself,—she began to dance upon it. In reply to her mother's
  • command and entreaty that she would behave more decorously, little
  • Pearl paused to gather the prickly burrs from a tall burdock which
  • grew beside the tomb. Taking a handful of these, she arranged them
  • along the lines of the scarlet letter that decorated the maternal
  • bosom, to which the burrs, as their nature was, tenaciously adhered.
  • Hester did not pluck them off.
  • Roger Chillingworth had by this time approached the window, and smiled
  • grimly down.
  • “There is no law, nor reverence for authority, no regard for human
  • ordinances or opinions, right or wrong, mixed up with that child's
  • composition,” remarked he, as much to himself as to his companion. “I
  • saw her, the other day, bespatter the Governor himself with water, at
  • the cattle-trough in Spring Lane. What, in Heaven's name, is she? Is
  • the imp altogether evil? Hath she affections? Hath she any
  • discoverable principle of being?”
  • “None, save the freedom of a broken law,” answered Mr. Dimmesdale, in
  • a quiet way, as if he had been discussing the point within himself.
  • “Whether capable of good, I know not.”
  • The child probably overheard their voices; for, looking up to the
  • window, with a bright, but naughty smile of mirth and intelligence,
  • she threw one of the prickly burrs at the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale. The
  • sensitive clergyman shrunk, with nervous dread, from the light
  • missile. Detecting his emotion, Pearl clapped her little hands, in the
  • most extravagant ecstasy. Hester Prynne, likewise, had involuntarily
  • looked up; and all these four persons, old and young, regarded one
  • another in silence, till the child laughed aloud, and shouted,—“Come
  • away, mother! Come away, or yonder old Black Man will catch you! He
  • hath got hold of the minister already. Come away, mother, or he will
  • catch you! But he cannot catch little Pearl!”
  • So she drew her mother away, skipping, dancing, and frisking
  • fantastically, among the hillocks of the dead people, like a creature
  • that had nothing in common with a bygone and buried generation, nor
  • owned herself akin to it. It was as if she had been made afresh, out
  • of new elements, and must perforce be permitted to live her own life,
  • and be a law unto herself, without her eccentricities being reckoned
  • to her for a crime.
  • “There goes a woman,” resumed Roger Chillingworth, after a pause,
  • “who, be her demerits what they may, hath none of that mystery of
  • hidden sinfulness which you deem so grievous to be borne. Is Hester
  • Prynne the less miserable, think you, for that scarlet letter on her
  • breast?”
  • “I do verily believe it,” answered the clergyman. “Nevertheless, I
  • cannot answer for her. There was a look of pain in her face, which I
  • would gladly have been spared the sight of. But still, methinks, it
  • must needs be better for the sufferer to be free to show his pain, as
  • this poor woman Hester is, than to cover it all up in his heart.”
  • There was another pause; and the physician began anew to examine and
  • arrange the plants which he had gathered.
  • “You inquired of me, a little time agone,” said he, at length, “my
  • judgment as touching your health.”
  • “I did,” answered the clergyman, “and would gladly learn it. Speak
  • frankly, I pray you, be it for life or death.”
  • “Freely, then, and plainly,” said the physician, still busy with his
  • plants, but keeping a wary eye on Mr. Dimmesdale, “the disorder is a
  • strange one; not so much in itself, nor as outwardly manifested,—in
  • so far, at least, as the symptoms have been laid open to my
  • observation. Looking daily at you, my good Sir, and watching the
  • tokens of your aspect, now for months gone by, I should deem you a man
  • sore sick, it may be, yet not so sick but that an instructed and
  • watchful physician might well hope to cure you. But—I know not what
  • to say—the disease is what I seem to know, yet know it not.”
  • “You speak in riddles, learned Sir,” said the pale minister, glancing
  • aside out of the window.
  • “Then, to speak more plainly,” continued the physician, “and I crave
  • pardon, Sir,—should it seem to require pardon,—for this needful
  • plainness of my speech. Let me ask,—as your friend,—as one having
  • charge, under Providence, of your life and physical well-being,—hath
  • all the operation of this disorder been fairly laid open and recounted
  • to me?”
  • “How can you question it?” asked the minister. “Surely, it were
  • child's play, to call in a physician, and then hide the sore!”
  • “You would tell me, then, that I know all?” said Roger Chillingworth,
  • deliberately, and fixing an eye, bright with intense and concentrated
  • intelligence, on the minister's face. “Be it so! But, again! He to
  • whom only the outward and physical evil is laid open, knoweth,
  • oftentimes, but half the evil which he is called upon to cure. A
  • bodily disease, which we look upon as whole and entire within itself,
  • may, after all, be but a symptom of some ailment in the spiritual
  • part. Your pardon, once again, good Sir, if my speech give the shadow
  • of offence. You, Sir, of all men whom I have known, are he whose body
  • is the closest conjoined, and imbued, and identified, so to speak,
  • with the spirit whereof it is the instrument.”
  • “Then I need ask no further,” said the clergyman, somewhat hastily
  • rising from his chair. “You deal not, I take it, in medicine for the
  • soul!”
  • “Thus, a sickness,” continued Roger Chillingworth, going on, in an
  • unaltered tone, without heeding the interruption,—but standing up,
  • and confronting the emaciated and white-cheeked minister, with his
  • low, dark, and misshapen figure,—“a sickness, a sore place, if we may
  • so call it, in your spirit, hath immediately its appropriate
  • manifestation in your bodily frame. Would you, therefore, that your
  • physician heal the bodily evil? How may this be, unless you first lay
  • open to him the wound or trouble in your soul?”
  • “No!—not to thee!—not to an earthly physician!” cried Mr.
  • Dimmesdale, passionately, and turning his eyes, full and bright, and
  • with a kind of fierceness, on old Roger Chillingworth. “Not to thee!
  • But if it be the soul's disease, then do I commit myself to the one
  • Physician of the soul! He, if it stand with his good pleasure, can
  • cure; or he can kill! Let him do with me as, in his justice and
  • wisdom, he shall see good. But who art thou, that meddlest in this
  • matter?—that dares thrust himself between the sufferer and his God?”
  • With a frantic gesture he rushed out of the room.
  • “It is as well to have made this step,” said Roger Chillingworth to
  • himself, looking after the minister with a grave smile. “There is
  • nothing lost. We shall be friends again anon. But see, now, how
  • passion takes hold upon this man, and hurrieth him out of himself! As
  • with one passion, so with another! He hath done a wild thing erenow,
  • this pious Master Dimmesdale, in the hot passion of his heart!”
  • [Illustration: The Leech and his Patient]
  • It proved not difficult to re-establish the intimacy of the two
  • companions, on the same footing and in the same degree as heretofore.
  • The young clergyman, after a few hours of privacy, was sensible that
  • the disorder of his nerves had hurried him into an unseemly outbreak
  • of temper, which there had been nothing in the physician's words to
  • excuse or palliate. He marvelled, indeed, at the violence with which
  • he had thrust back the kind old man, when merely proffering the advice
  • which it was his duty to bestow, and which the minister himself had
  • expressly sought. With these remorseful feelings, he lost no time in
  • making the amplest apologies, and besought his friend still to
  • continue the care, which, if not successful in restoring him to
  • health, had, in all probability, been the means of prolonging his
  • feeble existence to that hour. Roger Chillingworth readily assented,
  • and went on with his medical supervision of the minister; doing his
  • best for him, in all good faith, but always quitting the patient's
  • apartment, at the close of a professional interview, with a mysterious
  • and puzzled smile upon his lips. This expression was invisible in Mr.
  • Dimmesdale's presence, but grew strongly evident as the physician
  • crossed the threshold.
  • “A rare case!” he muttered. “I must needs look deeper into it. A
  • strange sympathy betwixt soul and body! Were it only for the art's
  • sake, I must search this matter to the bottom!”
  • It came to pass, not long after the scene above recorded, that the
  • Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale, at noonday, and entirely unawares, fell into
  • a deep, deep slumber, sitting in his chair, with a large black-letter
  • volume open before him on the table. It must have been a work of vast
  • ability in the somniferous school of literature. The profound depth of
  • the minister's repose was the more remarkable, inasmuch as he was one
  • of those persons whose sleep, ordinarily, is as light, as fitful, and
  • as easily scared away, as a small bird hopping on a twig. To such an
  • unwonted remoteness, however, had his spirit now withdrawn into
  • itself, that he stirred not in his chair, when old Roger
  • Chillingworth, without any extraordinary precaution, came into the
  • room. The physician advanced directly in front of his patient, laid
  • his hand upon his bosom, and thrust aside the vestment, that,
  • hitherto, had always covered it even from the professional eye.
  • Then, indeed, Mr. Dimmesdale shuddered, and slightly stirred.
  • After a brief pause, the physician turned away.
  • But, with what a wild look of wonder, joy, and horror! With what a
  • ghastly rapture, as it were, too mighty to be expressed only by the
  • eye and features, and therefore bursting forth through the whole
  • ugliness of his figure, and making itself even riotously manifest by
  • the extravagant gestures with which he threw up his arms towards the
  • ceiling, and stamped his foot upon the floor! Had a man seen old
  • Roger Chillingworth, at that moment of his ecstasy, he would have had
  • no need to ask how Satan comports himself, when a precious human soul
  • is lost to heaven, and won into his kingdom.
  • But what distinguished the physician's ecstasy from Satan's was the
  • trait of wonder in it!
  • [Illustration]
  • [Illustration]
  • XI.
  • THE INTERIOR OF A HEART.
  • After the incident last described, the intercourse between the
  • clergyman and the physician, though externally the same, was really of
  • another character than it had previously been. The intellect of Roger
  • Chillingworth had now a sufficiently plain path before it. It was not,
  • indeed, precisely that which he had laid out for himself to tread.
  • Calm, gentle, passionless, as he appeared, there was yet, we fear, a
  • quiet depth of malice, hitherto latent, but active now, in this
  • unfortunate old man, which led him to imagine a more intimate revenge
  • than any mortal had ever wreaked upon an enemy. To make himself the
  • one trusted friend, to whom should be confided all the fear, the
  • remorse, the agony, the ineffectual repentance, the backward rush of
  • sinful thoughts, expelled in vain! All that guilty sorrow, hidden from
  • the world, whose great heart would have pitied and forgiven, to be
  • revealed to him, the Pitiless, to him, the Unforgiving! All that dark
  • treasure to be lavished on the very man, to whom nothing else could so
  • adequately pay the debt of vengeance!
  • The clergyman's shy and sensitive reserve had balked this scheme.
  • Roger Chillingworth, however, was inclined to be hardly, if at all,
  • less satisfied with the aspect of affairs, which Providence—using the
  • avenger and his victim for its own purposes, and, perchance, pardoning
  • where it seemed most to punish—had substituted for his black devices.
  • A revelation, he could almost say, had been granted to him. It
  • mattered little, for his object, whether celestial, or from what other
  • region. By its aid, in all the subsequent relations betwixt him and
  • Mr. Dimmesdale, not merely the external presence, but the very inmost
  • soul, of the latter, seemed to be brought out before his eyes, so that
  • he could see and comprehend its every movement. He became,
  • thenceforth, not a spectator only, but a chief actor, in the poor
  • minister's interior world. He could play upon him as he chose. Would
  • he arouse him with a throb of agony? The victim was forever on the
  • rack; it needed only to know the spring that controlled the
  • engine;—and the physician knew it well! Would he startle him with
  • sudden fear? As at the waving of a magician's wand, uprose a grisly
  • phantom,—uprose a thousand phantoms,—in many shapes, of death, or
  • more awful shame, all flocking round about the clergyman, and pointing
  • with their fingers at his breast!
  • All this was accomplished with a subtlety so perfect, that the
  • minister, though he had constantly a dim perception of some evil
  • influence watching over him, could never gain a knowledge of its
  • actual nature. True, he looked doubtfully, fearfully,—even, at times,
  • with horror and the bitterness of hatred,—at the deformed figure of
  • the old physician. His gestures, his gait, his grizzled beard, his
  • slightest and most indifferent acts, the very fashion of his garments,
  • were odious in the clergyman's sight; a token implicitly to be relied
  • on, of a deeper antipathy in the breast of the latter than he was
  • willing to acknowledge to himself. For, as it was impossible to assign
  • a reason for such distrust and abhorrence, so Mr. Dimmesdale,
  • conscious that the poison of one morbid spot was infecting his heart's
  • entire substance, attributed all his presentiments to no other cause.
  • He took himself to task for his bad sympathies in reference to Roger
  • Chillingworth, disregarded the lesson that he should have drawn from
  • them, and did his best to root them out. Unable to accomplish this, he
  • nevertheless, as a matter of principle, continued his habits of social
  • familiarity with the old man, and thus gave him constant opportunities
  • for perfecting the purpose to which—poor, forlorn creature that he
  • was, and more wretched than his victim—the avenger had devoted
  • himself.
  • While thus suffering under bodily disease, and gnawed and tortured by
  • some black trouble of the soul, and given over to the machinations of
  • his deadliest enemy, the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale had achieved a
  • brilliant popularity in his sacred office. He won it, indeed, in great
  • part, by his sorrows. His intellectual gifts, his moral perceptions,
  • his power of experiencing and communicating emotion, were kept in a
  • state of preternatural activity by the prick and anguish of his daily
  • life. His fame, though still on its upward slope, already overshadowed
  • the soberer reputations of his fellow-clergymen, eminent as several of
  • them were. There were scholars among them, who had spent more years in
  • acquiring abstruse lore, connected with the divine profession, than
  • Mr. Dimmesdale had lived; and who might well, therefore, be more
  • profoundly versed in such solid and valuable attainments than their
  • youthful brother. There were men, too, of a sturdier texture of mind
  • than his, and endowed with a far greater share of shrewd, hard, iron,
  • or granite understanding; which, duly mingled with a fair proportion
  • of doctrinal ingredient, constitutes a highly respectable,
  • efficacious, and unamiable variety of the clerical species. There were
  • others, again, true saintly fathers, whose faculties had been
  • elaborated by weary toil among their books, and by patient thought,
  • and etherealized, moreover, by spiritual communications with the
  • better world, into which their purity of life had almost introduced
  • these holy personages, with their garments of mortality still clinging
  • to them. All that they lacked was the gift that descended upon the
  • chosen disciples at Pentecost, in tongues of flame; symbolizing, it
  • would seem, not the power of speech in foreign and unknown languages,
  • but that of addressing the whole human brotherhood in the heart's
  • native language. These fathers, otherwise so apostolic, lacked
  • Heaven's last and rarest attestation of their office, the Tongue of
  • Flame. They would have vainly sought—had they ever dreamed of
  • seeking—to express the highest truths through the humblest medium of
  • familiar words and images. Their voices came down, afar and
  • indistinctly, from the upper heights where they habitually dwelt.
  • [Illustration: The Virgins of the Church]
  • Not improbably, it was to this latter class of men that Mr.
  • Dimmesdale, by many of his traits of character, naturally belonged. To
  • the high mountain-peaks of faith and sanctity he would have climbed,
  • had not the tendency been thwarted by the burden, whatever it might
  • be, of crime or anguish, beneath which it was his doom to totter. It
  • kept him down, on a level with the lowest; him, the man of ethereal
  • attributes, whose voice the angels might else have listened to and
  • answered! But this very burden it was, that gave him sympathies so
  • intimate with the sinful brotherhood of mankind; so that his heart
  • vibrated in unison with theirs, and received their pain into itself,
  • and sent its own throb of pain through a thousand other hearts, in
  • gushes of sad, persuasive eloquence. Oftenest persuasive, but
  • sometimes terrible! The people knew not the power that moved them
  • thus. They deemed the young clergyman a miracle of holiness. They
  • fancied him the mouthpiece of Heaven's messages of wisdom, and rebuke,
  • and love. In their eyes, the very ground on which he trod was
  • sanctified. The virgins of his church grew pale around him, victims of
  • a passion so imbued with religious sentiment that they imagined it to
  • be all religion, and brought it openly, in their white bosoms, as
  • their most acceptable sacrifice before the altar. The aged members of
  • his flock, beholding Mr. Dimmesdale's frame so feeble, while they were
  • themselves so rugged in their infirmity, believed that he would go
  • heavenward before them, and enjoined it upon their children, that
  • their old bones should be buried close to their young pastor's holy
  • grave. And, all this time, perchance, when poor Mr. Dimmesdale was
  • thinking of his grave, he questioned with himself whether the grass
  • would ever grow on it, because an accursed thing must there be buried!
  • It is inconceivable, the agony with which this public veneration
  • tortured him! It was his genuine impulse to adore the truth, and to
  • reckon all things shadow-like, and utterly devoid of weight or value,
  • that had not its divine essence as the life within their life. Then,
  • what was he?—a substance?—or the dimmest of all shadows? He longed
  • to speak out, from his own pulpit, at the full height of his voice,
  • and tell the people what he was. “I, whom you behold in these black
  • garments of the priesthood,—I, who ascend the sacred desk, and turn
  • my pale face heavenward, taking upon myself to hold communion, in your
  • behalf, with the Most High Omniscience,—I, in whose daily life you
  • discern the sanctity of Enoch,—I, whose footsteps, as you suppose,
  • leave a gleam along my earthly track, whereby the pilgrims that shall
  • come after me may be guided to the regions of the blest,—I, who have
  • laid the hand of baptism upon your children,—I, who have breathed the
  • parting prayer over your dying friends, to whom the Amen sounded
  • faintly from a world which they had quitted,—I, your pastor, whom you
  • so reverence and trust, am utterly a pollution and a lie!”
  • More than once, Mr. Dimmesdale had gone into the pulpit, with a
  • purpose never to come down its steps, until he should have spoken
  • words like the above. More than once, he had cleared his throat, and
  • drawn in the long, deep, and tremulous breath, which, when sent forth
  • again, would come burdened with the black secret of his soul. More
  • than once—nay, more than a hundred times—he had actually spoken!
  • Spoken! But how? He had told his hearers that he was altogether vile,
  • a viler companion of the vilest, the worst of sinners, an abomination,
  • a thing of unimaginable iniquity; and that the only wonder was, that
  • they did not see his wretched body shrivelled up before their eyes, by
  • the burning wrath of the Almighty! Could there be plainer speech than
  • this? Would not the people start up in their seats, by a simultaneous
  • impulse, and tear him down out of the pulpit which he defiled? Not so,
  • indeed! They heard it all, and did but reverence him the more. They
  • little guessed what deadly purport lurked in those self-condemning
  • words. “The godly youth!” said they among themselves. “The saint on
  • earth! Alas, if he discern such sinfulness in his own white soul, what
  • horrid spectacle would he behold in thine or mine!” The minister well
  • knew—subtle, but remorseful hypocrite that he was!—the light in
  • which his vague confession would be viewed. He had striven to put a
  • cheat upon himself by making the avowal of a guilty conscience, but
  • had gained only one other sin, and a self-acknowledged shame, without
  • the momentary relief of being self-deceived. He had spoken the very
  • truth, and transformed it into the veriest falsehood. And yet, by the
  • constitution of his nature, he loved the truth, and loathed the lie,
  • as few men ever did. Therefore, above all things else, he loathed his
  • miserable self!
  • His inward trouble drove him to practices more in accordance with the
  • old, corrupted faith of Rome, than with the better light of the church
  • in which he had been born and bred. In Mr. Dimmesdale's secret closet,
  • under lock and key, there was a bloody scourge. Oftentimes, this
  • Protestant and Puritan divine had plied it on his own shoulders;
  • laughing bitterly at himself the while, and smiting so much the more
  • pitilessly because of that bitter laugh. It was his custom, too, as it
  • has been that of many other pious Puritans, to fast,—not, however,
  • like them, in order to purify the body and render it the fitter medium
  • of celestial illumination, but rigorously, and until his knees
  • trembled beneath him, as an act of penance. He kept vigils, likewise,
  • night after night, sometimes in utter darkness; sometimes with a
  • glimmering lamp; and sometimes, viewing his own face in a
  • looking-glass, by the most powerful light which he could throw upon
  • it. He thus typified the constant introspection wherewith he tortured,
  • but could not purify, himself. In these lengthened vigils, his brain
  • often reeled, and visions seemed to flit before him; perhaps seen
  • doubtfully, and by a faint light of their own, in the remote dimness
  • of the chamber, or more vividly, and close beside him, within the
  • looking-glass. Now it was a herd of diabolic shapes, that grinned and
  • mocked at the pale minister, and beckoned him away with them; now a
  • group of shining angels, who flew upward heavily, as sorrow-laden, but
  • grew more ethereal as they rose. Now came the dead friends of his
  • youth, and his white-bearded father, with a saint-like frown, and his
  • mother, turning her face away as she passed by. Ghost of a
  • mother,—thinnest fantasy of a mother,—methinks she might yet have
  • thrown a pitying glance towards her son! And now, through the chamber
  • which these spectral thoughts had made so ghastly, glided Hester
  • Prynne, leading along little Pearl, in her scarlet garb, and pointing
  • her forefinger, first at the scarlet letter on her bosom, and then at
  • the clergyman's own breast.
  • None of these visions ever quite deluded him. At any moment, by an
  • effort of his will, he could discern substances through their misty
  • lack of substance, and convince himself that they were not solid in
  • their nature, like yonder table of carved oak, or that big, square,
  • leathern-bound and brazen-clasped volume of divinity. But, for all
  • that, they were, in one sense, the truest and most substantial things
  • which the poor minister now dealt with. It is the unspeakable misery
  • of a life so false as his, that it steals the pith and substance out
  • of whatever realities there are around us, and which were meant by
  • Heaven to be the spirit's joy and nutriment. To the untrue man, the
  • whole universe is false,—it is impalpable,—it shrinks to nothing
  • within his grasp. And he himself, in so far as he shows himself in a
  • false light, becomes a shadow, or, indeed, ceases to exist. The only
  • truth that continued to give Mr. Dimmesdale a real existence on this
  • earth, was the anguish in his inmost soul, and the undissembled
  • expression of it in his aspect. Had he once found power to smile, and
  • wear a face of gayety, there would have been no such man!
  • On one of those ugly nights, which we have faintly hinted at, but
  • forborne to picture forth, the minister started from his chair. A new
  • thought had struck him. There might be a moment's peace in it.
  • Attiring himself with as much care as if it had been for public
  • worship, and precisely in the same manner, he stole softly down the
  • staircase, undid the door, and issued forth.
  • [Illustration]
  • [Illustration]
  • XII.
  • THE MINISTER'S VIGIL.
  • Walking in the shadow of a dream, as it were, and perhaps actually
  • under the influence of a species of somnambulism, Mr. Dimmesdale
  • reached the spot where, now so long since, Hester Prynne had lived
  • through her first hours of public ignominy. The same platform or
  • scaffold, black and weather-stained with the storm or sunshine of
  • seven long years, and foot-worn, too, with the tread of many culprits
  • who had since ascended it, remained standing beneath the balcony of
  • the meeting-house. The minister went up the steps.
  • It was an obscure night of early May. An unvaried pall of cloud
  • muffled the whole expanse of sky from zenith to horizon. If the same
  • multitude which had stood as eye-witnesses while Hester Prynne
  • sustained her punishment could now have been summoned forth, they
  • would have discerned no face above the platform, nor hardly the
  • outline of a human shape, in the dark gray of the midnight. But the
  • town was all asleep. There was no peril of discovery. The minister
  • might stand there, if it so pleased him, until morning should redden
  • in the east, without other risk than that the dank and chill night-air
  • would creep into his frame, and stiffen his joints with rheumatism,
  • and clog his throat with catarrh and cough; thereby defrauding the
  • expectant audience of to-morrow's prayer and sermon. No eye could see
  • him, save that ever-wakeful one which had seen him in his closet,
  • wielding the bloody scourge. Why, then, had he come hither? Was it but
  • the mockery of penitence? A mockery, indeed, but in which his soul
  • trifled with itself! A mockery at which angels blushed and wept, while
  • fiends rejoiced, with jeering laughter! He had been driven hither by
  • the impulse of that Remorse which dogged him everywhere, and whose own
  • sister and closely linked companion was that Cowardice which
  • invariably drew him back, with her tremulous gripe, just when the
  • other impulse had hurried him to the verge of a disclosure. Poor,
  • miserable man! what right had infirmity like his to burden itself with
  • crime? Crime is for the iron-nerved, who have their choice either to
  • endure it, or, if it press too hard, to exert their fierce and savage
  • strength for a good purpose, and fling it off at once! This feeble and
  • most sensitive of spirits could do neither, yet continually did one
  • thing or another, which intertwined, in the same inextricable knot,
  • the agony of heaven-defying guilt and vain repentance.
  • And thus, while standing on the scaffold, in this vain show of
  • expiation, Mr. Dimmesdale was overcome with a great horror of mind, as
  • if the universe were gazing at a scarlet token on his naked breast,
  • right over his heart. On that spot, in very truth, there was, and
  • there had long been, the gnawing and poisonous tooth of bodily pain.
  • Without any effort of his will, or power to restrain himself, he
  • shrieked aloud; an outcry that went pealing through the night, and
  • was beaten back from one house to another, and reverberated from the
  • hills in the background; as if a company of devils, detecting so much
  • misery and terror in it, had made a plaything of the sound, and were
  • bandying it to and fro.
  • “It is done!” muttered the minister, covering his face with his hands.
  • “The whole town will awake, and hurry forth, and find me here!”
  • But it was not so. The shriek had perhaps sounded with a far greater
  • power, to his own startled ears, than it actually possessed. The town
  • did not awake; or, if it did, the drowsy slumberers mistook the cry
  • either for something frightful in a dream, or for the noise of
  • witches; whose voices, at that period, were often heard to pass over
  • the settlements or lonely cottages, as they rode with Satan through
  • the air. The clergyman, therefore, hearing no symptoms of disturbance,
  • uncovered his eyes and looked about him. At one of the chamber-windows
  • of Governor Bellingham's mansion, which stood at some distance, on the
  • line of another street, he beheld the appearance of the old magistrate
  • himself, with a lamp in his hand, a white night-cap on his head, and a
  • long white gown enveloping his figure. He looked like a ghost, evoked
  • unseasonably from the grave. The cry had evidently startled him. At
  • another window of the same house, moreover, appeared old Mistress
  • Hibbins, the Governor's sister, also with a lamp, which, even thus far
  • off, revealed the expression of her sour and discontented face. She
  • thrust forth her head from the lattice, and looked anxiously upward.
  • Beyond the shadow of a doubt, this venerable witch-lady had heard Mr.
  • Dimmesdale's outcry, and interpreted it, with its multitudinous echoes
  • and reverberations, as the clamor of the fiends and night-hags, with
  • whom she was well known to make excursions into the forest.
  • Detecting the gleam of Governor Bellingham's lamp, the old lady
  • quickly extinguished her own, and vanished. Possibly, she went up
  • among the clouds. The minister saw nothing further of her motions. The
  • magistrate, after a wary observation of the darkness,—into which,
  • nevertheless, he could see but little further than he might into a
  • mill-stone,—retired from the window.
  • The minister grew comparatively calm. His eyes, however, were soon
  • greeted by a little, glimmering light, which, at first a long way off,
  • was approaching up the street. It threw a gleam of recognition on here
  • a post, and there a garden-fence, and here a latticed window-pane, and
  • there a pump, with its full trough of water, and here, again, an
  • arched door of oak, with an iron knocker, and a rough log for the
  • doorstep. The Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale noted all these minute
  • particulars, even while firmly convinced that the doom of his
  • existence was stealing onward, in the footsteps which he now heard;
  • and that the gleam of the lantern would fall upon him, in a few
  • moments more, and reveal his long-hidden secret. As the light drew
  • nearer, he beheld, within its illuminated circle, his brother
  • clergyman,—or, to speak more accurately, his professional father, as
  • well as highly valued friend,—the Reverend Mr. Wilson; who, as Mr.
  • Dimmesdale now conjectured, had been praying at the bedside of some
  • dying man. And so he had. The good old minister came freshly from the
  • death-chamber of Governor Winthrop, who had passed from earth to
  • heaven within that very hour. And now, surrounded, like the saint-like
  • personages of olden times, with a radiant halo, that glorified him
  • amid this gloomy night of sin,—as if the departed Governor had left
  • him an inheritance of his glory, or as if he had caught upon himself
  • the distant shine of the celestial city, while looking thitherward to
  • see the triumphant pilgrim pass within its gates,—now, in short, good
  • Father Wilson was moving homeward, aiding his footsteps with a lighted
  • lantern! The glimmer of this luminary suggested the above conceits to
  • Mr. Dimmesdale, who smiled,—nay, almost laughed at them,—and then
  • wondered if he were going mad.
  • As the Reverend Mr. Wilson passed beside the scaffold, closely
  • muffling his Geneva cloak about him with one arm, and holding the
  • lantern before his breast with the other, the minister could hardly
  • restrain himself from speaking.
  • “A good evening to you, venerable Father Wilson! Come up hither, I
  • pray you, and pass a pleasant hour with me!”
  • Good heavens! Had Mr. Dimmesdale actually spoken? For one instant, he
  • believed that these words had passed his lips. But they were uttered
  • only within his imagination. The venerable Father Wilson continued to
  • step slowly onward, looking carefully at the muddy pathway before his
  • feet, and never once turning his head towards the guilty platform.
  • When the light of the glimmering lantern had faded quite away, the
  • minister discovered, by the faintness which came over him, that the
  • last few moments had been a crisis of terrible anxiety; although his
  • mind had made an involuntary effort to relieve itself by a kind of
  • lurid playfulness.
  • Shortly afterwards, the like grisly sense of the humorous again stole
  • in among the solemn phantoms of his thought. He felt his limbs growing
  • stiff with the unaccustomed chilliness of the night, and doubted
  • whether he should be able to descend the steps of the scaffold.
  • Morning would break, and find him there. The neighborhood would begin
  • to rouse itself. The earliest riser, coming forth in the dim
  • twilight, would perceive a vaguely defined figure aloft on the place
  • of shame; and, half crazed betwixt alarm and curiosity, would go,
  • knocking from door to door, summoning all the people to behold the
  • ghost—as he needs must think it—of some defunct transgressor. A
  • dusky tumult would flap its wings from one house to another. Then—the
  • morning light still waxing stronger—old patriarchs would rise up in
  • great haste, each in his flannel gown, and matronly dames, without
  • pausing to put off their night-gear. The whole tribe of decorous
  • personages, who had never heretofore been seen with a single hair of
  • their heads awry, would start into public view, with the disorder of a
  • nightmare in their aspects. Old Governor Bellingham would come grimly
  • forth, with his King James's ruff fastened askew; and Mistress
  • Hibbins, with some twigs of the forest clinging to her skirts, and
  • looking sourer than ever, as having hardly got a wink of sleep after
  • her night ride; and good Father Wilson, too, after spending half the
  • night at a death-bed, and liking ill to be disturbed, thus early, out
  • of his dreams about the glorified saints. Hither, likewise, would come
  • the elders and deacons of Mr. Dimmesdale's church, and the young
  • virgins who so idolized their minister, and had made a shrine for him
  • in their white bosoms; which now, by the by, in their hurry and
  • confusion, they would scantly have given themselves time to cover with
  • their kerchiefs. All people, in a word, would come stumbling over
  • their thresholds, and turning up their amazed and horror-stricken
  • visages around the scaffold. Whom would they discern there, with the
  • red eastern light upon his brow? Whom, but the Reverend Arthur
  • Dimmesdale, half frozen to death, overwhelmed with shame, and standing
  • where Hester Prynne had stood!
  • Carried away by the grotesque horror of this picture, the minister,
  • unawares, and to his own infinite alarm, burst into a great peal of
  • laughter. It was immediately responded to by a light, airy, childish
  • laugh, in which, with a thrill of the heart,—but he knew not whether
  • of exquisite pain, or pleasure as acute,—he recognized the tones of
  • little Pearl.
  • “Pearl! Little Pearl!” cried he after a moment's pause; then,
  • suppressing his voice,—“Hester! Hester Prynne! Are you there?”
  • “Yes; it is Hester Prynne!” she replied, in a tone of surprise; and
  • the minister heard her footsteps approaching from the sidewalk, along
  • which she had been passing. “It is I, and my little Pearl.”
  • “Whence come you, Hester?” asked the minister. “What sent you hither?”
  • “I have been watching at a death-bed,” answered Hester Prynne;—“at
  • Governor Winthrop's death-bed, and have taken his measure for a robe,
  • and am now going homeward to my dwelling.”
  • “Come up hither, Hester, thou and little Pearl,” said the Reverend Mr.
  • Dimmesdale. “Ye have both been here before, but I was not with you.
  • Come up hither once again, and we will stand all three together!”
  • She silently ascended the steps, and stood on the platform, holding
  • little Pearl by the hand. The minister felt for the child's other
  • hand, and took it. The moment that he did so, there came what seemed a
  • tumultuous rush of new life, other life than his own, pouring like a
  • torrent into his heart, and hurrying through all his veins, as if the
  • mother and the child were communicating their vital warmth to his
  • half-torpid system. The three formed an electric chain.
  • “Minister!” whispered little Pearl.
  • “What wouldst thou say, child?” asked Mr. Dimmesdale.
  • “Wilt thou stand here with mother and me, to-morrow noontide?”
  • inquired Pearl.
  • “Nay; not so, my little Pearl,” answered the minister; for, with the
  • new energy of the moment, all the dread of public exposure, that had
  • so long been the anguish of his life, had returned upon him; and he
  • was already trembling at the conjunction in which—with a strange joy,
  • nevertheless—he now found himself. “Not so, my child. I shall,
  • indeed, stand with thy mother and thee one other day, but not
  • to-morrow.”
  • Pearl laughed, and attempted to pull away her hand. But the minister
  • held it fast.
  • “A moment longer, my child!” said he.
  • “But wilt thou promise,” asked Pearl, “to take my hand, and mother's
  • hand, to-morrow noontide?”
  • “Not then, Pearl,” said the minister, “but another time.”
  • “And what other time?” persisted the child.
  • “At the great judgment day,” whispered the minister,—and, strangely
  • enough, the sense that he was a professional teacher of the truth
  • impelled him to answer the child so. “Then, and there, before the
  • judgment-seat, thy mother, and thou, and I must stand together. But
  • the daylight of this world shall not see our meeting!”
  • Pearl laughed again.
  • [Illustration: “They stood in the noon of that strange splendor”]
  • But, before Mr. Dimmesdale had done speaking, a light gleamed far and
  • wide over all the muffled sky. It was doubtless caused by one of those
  • meteors, which the night-watcher may so often observe burning out to
  • waste, in the vacant regions of the atmosphere. So powerful was its
  • radiance, that it thoroughly illuminated the dense medium of cloud
  • betwixt the sky and earth. The great vault brightened, like the dome
  • of an immense lamp. It showed the familiar scene of the street, with
  • the distinctness of mid-day, but also with the awfulness that is
  • always imparted to familiar objects by an unaccustomed light. The
  • wooden houses, with their jutting stories and quaint gable-peaks; the
  • doorsteps and thresholds, with the early grass springing up about
  • them; the garden-plots, black with freshly turned earth; the
  • wheel-track, little worn, and, even in the market-place, margined with
  • green on either side;—all were visible, but with a singularity of
  • aspect that seemed to give another moral interpretation to the things
  • of this world than they had ever borne before. And there stood the
  • minister, with his hand over his heart; and Hester Prynne, with the
  • embroidered letter glimmering on her bosom; and little Pearl, herself
  • a symbol, and the connecting link between those two. They stood in the
  • noon of that strange and solemn splendor, as if it were the light that
  • is to reveal all secrets, and the daybreak that shall unite all who
  • belong to one another.
  • There was witchcraft in little Pearl's eyes, and her face, as she
  • glanced upward at the minister, wore that naughty smile which made its
  • expression frequently so elvish. She withdrew her hand from Mr.
  • Dimmesdale's, and pointed across the street. But he clasped both his
  • hands over his breast, and cast his eyes towards the zenith.
  • Nothing was more common, in those days, than to interpret all meteoric
  • appearances, and other natural phenomena, that occurred with less
  • regularity than the rise and set of sun and moon, as so many
  • revelations from a supernatural source. Thus, a blazing spear, a sword
  • of flame, a bow, or a sheaf of arrows, seen in the midnight sky,
  • prefigured Indian warfare. Pestilence was known to have been foreboded
  • by a shower of crimson light. We doubt whether any marked event, for
  • good or evil, ever befell New England, from its settlement down to
  • Revolutionary times, of which the inhabitants had not been previously
  • warned by some spectacle of this nature. Not seldom, it had been seen
  • by multitudes. Oftener, however, its credibility rested on the faith
  • of some lonely eye-witness, who beheld the wonder through the colored,
  • magnifying, and distorting medium of his imagination, and shaped it
  • more distinctly in his after-thought. It was, indeed, a majestic idea,
  • that the destiny of nations should be revealed, in these awful
  • hieroglyphics, on the cope of heaven. A scroll so wide might not be
  • deemed too expansive for Providence to write a people's doom upon. The
  • belief was a favorite one with our forefathers, as betokening that
  • their infant commonwealth was under a celestial guardianship of
  • peculiar intimacy and strictness. But what shall we say, when an
  • individual discovers a revelation addressed to himself alone, on the
  • same vast sheet of record! In such a case, it could only be the
  • symptom of a highly disordered mental state, when a man, rendered
  • morbidly self-contemplative by long, intense, and secret pain, had
  • extended his egotism over the whole expanse of nature, until the
  • firmament itself should appear no more than a fitting page for his
  • soul's history and fate!
  • We impute it, therefore, solely to the disease in his own eye and
  • heart, that the minister, looking upward to the zenith, beheld there
  • the appearance of an immense letter,—the letter A,—marked out in
  • lines of dull red light. Not but the meteor may have shown itself at
  • that point, burning duskily through a veil of cloud; but with no such
  • shape as his guilty imagination gave it; or, at least, with so little
  • definiteness, that another's guilt might have seen another symbol in
  • it.
  • There was a singular circumstance that characterized Mr. Dimmesdale's
  • psychological state, at this moment. All the time that he gazed upward
  • to the zenith, he was, nevertheless, perfectly aware that little Pearl
  • was pointing her finger towards old Roger Chillingworth, who stood at
  • no great distance from the scaffold. The minister appeared to see him,
  • with the same glance that discerned the miraculous letter. To his
  • features, as to all other objects, the meteoric light imparted a new
  • expression; or it might well be that the physician was not careful
  • then, as at all other times, to hide the malevolence with which he
  • looked upon his victim. Certainly, if the meteor kindled up the sky,
  • and disclosed the earth, with an awfulness that admonished Hester
  • Prynne and the clergyman of the day of judgment, then might Roger
  • Chillingworth have passed with them for the arch-fiend, standing there
  • with a smile and scowl, to claim his own. So vivid was the expression,
  • or so intense the minister's perception of it, that it seemed still to
  • remain painted on the darkness, after the meteor had vanished, with an
  • effect as if the street and all things else were at once annihilated.
  • “Who is that man, Hester?” gasped Mr. Dimmesdale, overcome with
  • terror. “I shiver at him! Dost thou know the man? I hate him, Hester!”
  • She remembered her oath, and was silent.
  • “I tell thee, my soul shivers at him!” muttered the minister again.
  • “Who is he? Who is he? Canst thou do nothing for me? I have a nameless
  • horror of the man!”
  • “Minister,” said little Pearl, “I can tell thee who he is!”
  • “Quickly, then, child!” said the minister, bending his ear close to
  • her lips. “Quickly!—and as low as thou canst whisper.”
  • Pearl mumbled something into his ear, that sounded, indeed, like human
  • language, but was only such gibberish as children may be heard amusing
  • themselves with, by the hour together. At all events, if it involved
  • any secret information in regard to old Roger Chillingworth, it was in
  • a tongue unknown to the erudite clergyman, and did but increase the
  • bewilderment of his mind. The elvish child then laughed aloud.
  • “Dost thou mock me now?” said the minister.
  • “Thou wast not bold!—thou wast not true!”—answered the child. “Thou
  • wouldst not promise to take my hand, and mother's hand, to-morrow
  • noontide!”
  • “Worthy Sir,” answered the physician, who had now advanced to the foot
  • of the platform. “Pious Master Dimmesdale, can this be you? Well,
  • well, indeed! We men of study, whose heads are in our books, have need
  • to be straitly looked after! We dream in our waking moments, and walk
  • in our sleep. Come, good Sir, and my dear friend, I pray you, let me
  • lead you home!”
  • “How knewest thou that I was here?” asked the minister, fearfully.
  • “Verily, and in good faith,” answered Roger Chillingworth, “I knew
  • nothing of the matter. I had spent the better part of the night at the
  • bedside of the worshipful Governor Winthrop, doing what my poor skill
  • might to give him ease. He going home to a better world, I, likewise,
  • was on my way homeward, when this strange light shone out. Come with
  • me, I beseech you, Reverend Sir; else you will be poorly able to do
  • Sabbath duty to-morrow. Aha! see now, how they trouble the
  • brain,—these books!—these books! You should study less, good Sir,
  • and take a little pastime; or these night-whimseys will grow upon
  • you.”
  • “I will go home with you,” said Mr. Dimmesdale.
  • With a chill despondency, like one awaking, all nerveless, from an
  • ugly dream, he yielded himself to the physician, and was led away.
  • The next day, however, being the Sabbath, he preached a discourse
  • which was held to be the richest and most powerful, and the most
  • replete with heavenly influences, that had ever proceeded from his
  • lips. Souls, it is said more souls than one, were brought to the truth
  • by the efficacy of that sermon, and vowed within themselves to cherish
  • a holy gratitude towards Mr. Dimmesdale throughout the long hereafter.
  • But, as he came down the pulpit steps, the gray-bearded sexton met
  • him, holding up a black glove, which the minister recognized as his
  • own.
  • “It was found,” said the sexton, “this morning, on the scaffold where
  • evil-doers are set up to public shame. Satan dropped it there, I take
  • it, intending a scurrilous jest against your reverence. But, indeed,
  • he was blind and foolish, as he ever and always is. A pure hand needs
  • no glove to cover it!”
  • “Thank you, my good friend,” said the minister, gravely, but startled
  • at heart; for, so confused was his remembrance, that he had almost
  • brought himself to look at the events of the past night as visionary.
  • “Yes, it seems to be my glove, indeed!”
  • “And since Satan saw fit to steal it, your reverence must needs handle
  • him without gloves, henceforward,” remarked the old sexton, grimly
  • smiling. “But did your reverence hear of the portent that was seen
  • last night?—a great red letter in the sky,—the letter A, which we
  • interpret to stand for Angel. For, as our good Governor Winthrop was
  • made an angel this past night, it was doubtless held fit that there
  • should be some notice thereof!”
  • “No,” answered the minister, “I had not heard of it.”
  • [Illustration]
  • [Illustration]
  • XIII.
  • ANOTHER VIEW OF HESTER.
  • In her late singular interview with Mr. Dimmesdale, Hester Prynne was
  • shocked at the condition to which she found the clergyman reduced. His
  • nerve seemed absolutely destroyed. His moral force was abased into
  • more than childish weakness. It grovelled helpless on the ground, even
  • while his intellectual faculties retained their pristine strength, or
  • had perhaps acquired a morbid energy, which disease only could have
  • given them. With her knowledge of a train of circumstances hidden from
  • all others, she could readily infer that, besides the legitimate
  • action of his own conscience, a terrible machinery had been brought to
  • bear, and was still operating, on Mr. Dimmesdale's well-being and
  • repose. Knowing what this poor, fallen man had once been, her whole
  • soul was moved by the shuddering terror with which he had appealed to
  • her,—the outcast woman,—for support against his instinctively
  • discovered enemy. She decided, moreover, that he had a right to her
  • utmost aid. Little accustomed, in her long seclusion from society, to
  • measure her ideas of right and wrong by any standard external to
  • herself, Hester saw—or seemed to see—that there lay a responsibility
  • upon her, in reference to the clergyman, which she owed to no other,
  • nor to the whole world besides. The links that united her to the rest
  • of human kind—links of flowers, or silk, or gold, or whatever the
  • material—had all been broken. Here was the iron link of mutual crime,
  • which neither he nor she could break. Like all other ties, it brought
  • along with it its obligations.
  • Hester Prynne did not now occupy precisely the same position in which
  • we beheld her during the earlier periods of her ignominy. Years had
  • come and gone. Pearl was now seven years old. Her mother, with the
  • scarlet letter on her breast, glittering in its fantastic embroidery,
  • had long been a familiar object to the towns-people. As is apt to be
  • the case when a person stands out in any prominence before the
  • community, and, at the same time, interferes neither with public nor
  • individual interests and convenience, a species of general regard had
  • ultimately grown up in reference to Hester Prynne. It is to the credit
  • of human nature, that, except where its selfishness is brought into
  • play, it loves more readily than it hates. Hatred, by a gradual and
  • quiet process, will even be transformed to love, unless the change be
  • impeded by a continually new irritation of the original feeling of
  • hostility. In this matter of Hester Prynne, there was neither
  • irritation nor irksomeness. She never battled with the public, but
  • submitted, uncomplainingly, to its worst usage; she made no claim upon
  • it, in requital for what she suffered; she did not weigh upon its
  • sympathies. Then, also, the blameless purity of her life during all
  • these years in which she had been set apart to infamy, was reckoned
  • largely in her favor. With nothing now to lose, in the sight of
  • mankind, and with no hope, and seemingly no wish, of gaining anything,
  • it could only be a genuine regard for virtue that had brought back the
  • poor wanderer to its paths.
  • [Illustration: Hester in the House of Mourning]
  • It was perceived, too, that while Hester never put forward even the
  • humblest title to share in the world's privileges,—further than to
  • breathe the common air, and earn daily bread for little Pearl and
  • herself by the faithful labor of her hands,—she was quick to
  • acknowledge her sisterhood with the race of man, whenever benefits
  • were to be conferred. None so ready as she to give of her little
  • substance to every demand of poverty; even though the bitter-hearted
  • pauper threw back a gibe in requital of the food brought regularly to
  • his door, or the garments wrought for him by the fingers that could
  • have embroidered a monarch's robe. None so self-devoted as Hester,
  • when pestilence stalked through the town. In all seasons of calamity,
  • indeed, whether general or of individuals, the outcast of society at
  • once found her place. She came, not as a guest, but as a rightful
  • inmate, into the household that was darkened by trouble; as if its
  • gloomy twilight were a medium in which she was entitled to hold
  • intercourse with her fellow-creatures. There glimmered the embroidered
  • letter, with comfort in its unearthly ray. Elsewhere the token of sin,
  • it was the taper of the sick-chamber. It had even thrown its gleam, in
  • the sufferer's hard extremity, across the verge of time. It had shown
  • him where to set his foot, while the light of earth was fast becoming
  • dim, and ere the light of futurity could reach him. In such
  • emergencies, Hester's nature showed itself warm and rich; a
  • well-spring of human tenderness, unfailing to every real demand, and
  • inexhaustible by the largest. Her breast, with its badge of shame, was
  • but the softer pillow for the head that needed one. She was
  • self-ordained a Sister of Mercy; or, we may rather say, the world's
  • heavy hand had so ordained her, when neither the world nor she looked
  • forward to this result. The letter was the symbol of her calling. Such
  • helpfulness was found in her,—so much power to do, and power to
  • sympathize,—that many people refused to interpret the scarlet A by
  • its original signification. They said that it meant Able; so strong
  • was Hester Prynne, with a woman's strength.
  • It was only the darkened house that could contain her. When sunshine
  • came again, she was not there. Her shadow had faded across the
  • threshold. The helpful inmate had departed, without one backward
  • glance to gather up the meed of gratitude, if any were in the hearts
  • of those whom she had served so zealously. Meeting them in the
  • street, she never raised her head to receive their greeting. If they
  • were resolute to accost her, she laid her finger on the scarlet
  • letter, and passed on. This might be pride, but was so like humility,
  • that it produced all the softening influence of the latter quality on
  • the public mind. The public is despotic in its temper; it is capable
  • of denying common justice, when too strenuously demanded as a right;
  • but quite as frequently it awards more than justice, when the appeal
  • is made, as despots love to have it made, entirely to its generosity.
  • Interpreting Hester Prynne's deportment as an appeal of this nature,
  • society was inclined to show its former victim a more benign
  • countenance than she cared to be favored with, or, perchance, than she
  • deserved.
  • The rulers, and the wise and learned men of the community, were longer
  • in acknowledging the influence of Hester's good qualities than the
  • people. The prejudices which they shared in common with the latter
  • were fortified in themselves by an iron framework of reasoning, that
  • made it a far tougher labor to expel them. Day by day, nevertheless,
  • their sour and rigid wrinkles were relaxing into something which, in
  • the due course of years, might grow to be an expression of almost
  • benevolence. Thus it was with the men of rank, on whom their eminent
  • position imposed the guardianship of the public morals. Individuals in
  • private life, meanwhile, had quite forgiven Hester Prynne for her
  • frailty; nay, more, they had begun to look upon the scarlet letter as
  • the token, not of that one sin, for which she had borne so long and
  • dreary a penance, but of her many good deeds since. “Do you see that
  • woman with the embroidered badge?” they would say to strangers. “It is
  • our Hester,—the town's own Hester, who is so kind to the poor, so
  • helpful to the sick, so comfortable to the afflicted!” Then, it is
  • true, the propensity of human nature to tell the very worst of itself,
  • when embodied in the person of another, would constrain them to
  • whisper the black scandal of bygone years. It was none the less a
  • fact, however, that, in the eyes of the very men who spoke thus, the
  • scarlet letter had the effect of the cross on a nun's bosom. It
  • imparted to the wearer a kind of sacredness, which enabled her to walk
  • securely amid all peril. Had she fallen among thieves, it would have
  • kept her safe. It was reported, and believed by many, that an Indian
  • had drawn his arrow against the badge, and that the missile struck it,
  • but fell harmless to the ground.
  • The effect of the symbol—or, rather, of the position in respect to
  • society that was indicated by it—on the mind of Hester Prynne
  • herself, was powerful and peculiar. All the light and graceful foliage
  • of her character had been withered up by this red-hot brand, and had
  • long ago fallen away, leaving a bare and harsh outline, which might
  • have been repulsive, had she possessed friends or companions to be
  • repelled by it. Even the attractiveness of her person had undergone a
  • similar change. It might be partly owing to the studied austerity of
  • her dress, and partly to the lack of demonstration in her manners. It
  • was a sad transformation, too, that her rich and luxuriant hair had
  • either been cut off, or was so completely hidden by a cap, that not a
  • shining lock of it ever once gushed into the sunshine. It was due in
  • part to all these causes, but still more to something else, that there
  • seemed to be no longer anything in Hester's face for Love to dwell
  • upon; nothing in Hester's form, though majestic and statue-like, that
  • Passion would ever dream of clasping in its embrace; nothing in
  • Hester's bosom, to make it ever again the pillow of Affection. Some
  • attribute had departed from her, the permanence of which had been
  • essential to keep her a woman. Such is frequently the fate, and such
  • the stern development, of the feminine character and person, when the
  • woman has encountered, and lived through, an experience of peculiar
  • severity. If she be all tenderness, she will die. If she survive, the
  • tenderness will either be crushed out of her, or—and the outward
  • semblance is the same—crushed so deeply into her heart that it can
  • never show itself more. The latter is perhaps the truest theory. She
  • who has once been woman, and ceased to be so, might at any moment
  • become a woman again if there were only the magic touch to effect the
  • transfiguration. We shall see whether Hester Prynne were ever
  • afterwards so touched, and so transfigured.
  • Much of the marble coldness of Hester's impression was to be
  • attributed to the circumstance, that her life had turned, in a great
  • measure, from passion and feeling, to thought. Standing alone in the
  • world,—alone, as to any dependence on society, and with little Pearl
  • to be guided and protected,—alone, and hopeless of retrieving her
  • position, even had she not scorned to consider it desirable,—she cast
  • away the fragments of a broken chain. The world's law was no law for
  • her mind. It was an age in which the human intellect, newly
  • emancipated, had taken a more active and a wider range than for many
  • centuries before. Men of the sword had overthrown nobles and kings.
  • Men bolder than these had overthrown and rearranged—not actually, but
  • within the sphere of theory, which was their most real abode—the
  • whole system of ancient prejudice, wherewith was linked much of
  • ancient principle. Hester Prynne imbibed this spirit. She assumed a
  • freedom of speculation, then common enough on the other side of the
  • Atlantic, but which our forefathers, had they known it, would have
  • held to be a deadlier crime than that stigmatized by the scarlet
  • letter. In her lonesome cottage, by the sea-shore, thoughts visited
  • her, such as dared to enter no other dwelling in New England; shadowy
  • guests, that would have been as perilous as demons to their
  • entertainer, could they have been seen so much as knocking at her
  • door.
  • It is remarkable, that persons who speculate the most boldly often
  • conform with the most perfect quietude to the external regulations of
  • society. The thought suffices them, without investing itself in the
  • flesh and blood of action. So it seemed to be with Hester. Yet, had
  • little Pearl never come to her from the spiritual world, it might have
  • been far otherwise. Then, she might have come down to us in history,
  • hand in hand with Ann Hutchinson, as the foundress of a religious
  • sect. She might, in one of her phases, have been a prophetess. She
  • might, and not improbably would, have suffered death from the stern
  • tribunals of the period, for attempting to undermine the foundations
  • of the Puritan establishment. But, in the education of her child, the
  • mother's enthusiasm of thought had something to wreak itself upon.
  • Providence, in the person of this little girl, had assigned to
  • Hester's charge the germ and blossom of womanhood, to be cherished and
  • developed amid a host of difficulties. Everything was against her. The
  • world was hostile. The child's own nature had something wrong in it,
  • which continually betokened that she had been born amiss,—the
  • effluence of her mother's lawless passion,—and often impelled Hester
  • to ask, in bitterness of heart, whether it were for ill or good that
  • the poor little creature had been born at all.
  • Indeed, the same dark question often rose into her mind, with
  • reference to the whole race of womanhood. Was existence worth
  • accepting, even to the happiest among them? As concerned her own
  • individual existence, she had long ago decided in the negative, and
  • dismissed the point as settled. A tendency to speculation, though it
  • may keep woman quiet, as it does man, yet makes her sad. She discerns,
  • it may be, such a hopeless task before her. As a first step, the whole
  • system of society is to be torn down, and built up anew. Then, the
  • very nature of the opposite sex, or its long hereditary habit, which
  • has become like nature, is to be essentially modified, before woman
  • can be allowed to assume what seems a fair and suitable position.
  • Finally, all other difficulties being obviated, woman cannot take
  • advantage of these preliminary reforms, until she herself shall have
  • undergone a still mightier change; in which, perhaps, the ethereal
  • essence, wherein she has her truest life, will be found to have
  • evaporated. A woman never overcomes these problems by any exercise of
  • thought. They are not to be solved, or only in one way. If her heart
  • chance to come uppermost, they vanish. Thus, Hester Prynne, whose
  • heart had lost its regular and healthy throb, wandered without a clew
  • in the dark labyrinth of mind; now turned aside by an insurmountable
  • precipice; now starting back from a deep chasm. There was wild and
  • ghastly scenery all around her, and a home and comfort nowhere. At
  • times, a fearful doubt strove to possess her soul, whether it were not
  • better to send Pearl at once to heaven, and go herself to such
  • futurity as Eternal Justice should provide.
  • The scarlet letter had not done its office.
  • Now, however, her interview with the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale, on the
  • night of his vigil, had given her a new theme of reflection, and held
  • up to her an object that appeared worthy of any exertion and sacrifice
  • for its attainment. She had witnessed the intense misery beneath
  • which the minister struggled, or, to speak more accurately, had ceased
  • to struggle. She saw that he stood on the verge of lunacy, if he had
  • not already stepped across it. It was impossible to doubt, that,
  • whatever painful efficacy there might be in the secret sting of
  • remorse, a deadlier venom had been infused into it by the hand that
  • proffered relief. A secret enemy had been continually by his side,
  • under the semblance of a friend and helper, and had availed himself of
  • the opportunities thus afforded for tampering with the delicate
  • springs of Mr. Dimmesdale's nature. Hester could not but ask herself,
  • whether there had not originally been a defect of truth, courage, and
  • loyalty, on her own part, in allowing the minister to be thrown into a
  • position where so much evil was to be foreboded, and nothing
  • auspicious to be hoped. Her only justification lay in the fact, that
  • she had been able to discern no method of rescuing him from a blacker
  • ruin than had overwhelmed herself, except by acquiescing in Roger
  • Chillingworth's scheme of disguise. Under that impulse, she had made
  • her choice, and had chosen, as it now appeared, the more wretched
  • alternative of the two. She determined to redeem her error, so far as
  • it might yet be possible. Strengthened by years of hard and solemn
  • trial, she felt herself no longer so inadequate to cope with Roger
  • Chillingworth as on that night, abased by sin, and half maddened by
  • the ignominy that was still new, when they had talked together in the
  • prison-chamber. She had climbed her way, since then, to a higher
  • point. The old man, on the other hand, had brought himself nearer to
  • her level, or perhaps below it, by the revenge which he had stooped
  • for.
  • In fine, Hester Prynne resolved to meet her former husband, and do
  • what might be in her power for the rescue of the victim on whom he
  • had so evidently set his gripe. The occasion was not long to seek. One
  • afternoon, walking with Pearl in a retired part of the peninsula, she
  • beheld the old physician, with a basket on one arm, and a staff in the
  • other hand, stooping along the ground, in quest of roots and herbs to
  • concoct his medicines withal.
  • [Illustration]
  • [Illustration]
  • XIV.
  • HESTER AND THE PHYSICIAN.
  • Hester bade little Pearl run down to the margin of the water, and play
  • with the shells and tangled sea-weed, until she should have talked
  • awhile with yonder gatherer of herbs. So the child flew away like a
  • bird, and, making bare her small white feet, went pattering along the
  • moist margin of the sea. Here and there she came to a full stop, and
  • peeped curiously into a pool, left by the retiring tide as a mirror
  • for Pearl to see her face in. Forth peeped at her, out of the pool,
  • with dark, glistening curls around her head, and an elf-smile in her
  • eyes, the image of a little maid, whom Pearl, having no other
  • playmate, invited to take her hand, and run a race with her. But the
  • visionary little maid, on her part, beckoned likewise, as if to
  • say,—“This is a better place! Come thou into the pool!” And Pearl,
  • stepping in, mid-leg deep, beheld her own white feet at the bottom;
  • while, out of a still lower depth, came the gleam of a kind of
  • fragmentary smile, floating to and fro in the agitated water.
  • Meanwhile, her mother had accosted the physician.
  • “I would speak a word with you,” said she,—“a word that concerns us
  • much.”
  • “Aha! and is it Mistress Hester that has a word for old Roger
  • Chillingworth?” answered he, raising himself from his stooping
  • posture. “With all my heart! Why, Mistress, I hear good tidings of you
  • on all hands! No longer ago than yester-eve, a magistrate, a wise and
  • godly man, was discoursing of your affairs, Mistress Hester, and
  • whispered me that there had been question concerning you in the
  • council. It was debated whether or no, with safety to the common weal,
  • yonder scarlet letter might be taken off your bosom. On my life,
  • Hester, I made my entreaty to the worshipful magistrate that it might
  • be done forthwith!”
  • “It lies not in the pleasure of the magistrates to take off this
  • badge,” calmly replied Hester. “Were I worthy to be quit of it, it
  • would fall away of its own nature, or be transformed into something
  • that should speak a different purport.”
  • “Nay, then, wear it, if it suit you better,” rejoined he. “A woman
  • must needs follow her own fancy, touching the adornment of her person.
  • The letter is gayly embroidered, and shows right bravely on your
  • bosom!”
  • All this while, Hester had been looking steadily at the old man, and
  • was shocked, as well as wonder-smitten, to discern what a change had
  • been wrought upon him within the past seven years. It was not so much
  • that he had grown older; for though the traces of advancing life were
  • visible, he bore his age well, and seemed to retain a wiry vigor and
  • alertness. But the former aspect of an intellectual and studious man,
  • calm and quiet, which was what she best remembered in him, had
  • altogether vanished, and been succeeded by an eager, searching,
  • almost fierce, yet carefully guarded look. It seemed to be his wish
  • and purpose to mask this expression with a smile; but the latter
  • played him false, and flickered over his visage so derisively, that
  • the spectator could see his blackness all the better for it. Ever and
  • anon, too, there came a glare of red light out of his eyes; as if the
  • old man's soul were on fire, and kept on smouldering duskily within
  • his breast, until, by some casual puff of passion, it was blown into a
  • momentary flame. This he repressed, as speedily as possible, and
  • strove to look as if nothing of the kind had happened.
  • In a word, old Roger Chillingworth was a striking evidence of man's
  • faculty of transforming himself into a devil, if he will only, for a
  • reasonable space of time, undertake a devil's office. This unhappy
  • person had effected such a transformation, by devoting himself, for
  • seven years, to the constant analysis of a heart full of torture, and
  • deriving his enjoyment thence, and adding fuel to those fiery tortures
  • which he analyzed and gloated over.
  • The scarlet letter burned on Hester Prynne's bosom. Here was another
  • ruin, the responsibility of which came partly home to her.
  • “What see you in my face,” asked the physician, “that you look at it
  • so earnestly?”
  • “Something that would make me weep, if there were any tears bitter
  • enough for it,” answered she. “But let it pass! It is of yonder
  • miserable man that I would speak.”
  • “And what of him?” cried Roger Chillingworth, eagerly, as if he loved
  • the topic, and were glad of an opportunity to discuss it with the only
  • person of whom he could make a confidant. “Not to hide the truth,
  • Mistress Hester, my thoughts happen just now to be busy with the
  • gentleman. So speak freely; and I will make answer.”
  • “When we last spake together,” said Hester, “now seven years ago, it
  • was your pleasure to extort a promise of secrecy, as touching the
  • former relation betwixt yourself and me. As the life and good fame of
  • yonder man were in your hands, there seemed no choice to me, save to
  • be silent, in accordance with your behest. Yet it was not without
  • heavy misgivings that I thus bound myself; for, having cast off all
  • duty towards other human beings, there remained a duty towards him;
  • and something whispered me that I was betraying it, in pledging myself
  • to keep your counsel. Since that day, no man is so near to him as you.
  • You tread behind his every footstep. You are beside him, sleeping and
  • waking. You search his thoughts. You burrow and rankle in his heart!
  • Your clutch is on his life, and you cause him to die daily a living
  • death; and still he knows you not. In permitting this, I have surely
  • acted a false part by the only man to whom the power was left me to be
  • true!”
  • “What choice had you?” asked Roger Chillingworth. “My finger, pointed
  • at this man, would have hurled him from his pulpit into a
  • dungeon,—thence, peradventure, to the gallows!”
  • “It had been better so!” said Hester Prynne.
  • “What evil have I done the man?” asked Roger Chillingworth again. “I
  • tell thee, Hester Prynne, the richest fee that ever physician earned
  • from monarch could not have bought such care as I have wasted on this
  • miserable priest! But for my aid, his life would have burned away in
  • torments, within the first two years after the perpetration of his
  • crime and thine. For, Hester, his spirit lacked the strength that
  • could have borne up, as thine has, beneath a burden like thy scarlet
  • letter. O, I could reveal a goodly secret! But enough! What art can
  • do, I have exhausted on him. That he now breathes, and creeps about on
  • earth, is owing all to me!”
  • “Better he had died at once!” said Hester Prynne.
  • “Yea, woman, thou sayest truly!” cried old Roger Chillingworth,
  • letting the lurid fire of his heart blaze out before her eyes. “Better
  • had he died at once! Never did mortal suffer what this man has
  • suffered. And all, all, in the sight of his worst enemy! He has been
  • conscious of me. He has felt an influence dwelling always upon him
  • like a curse. He knew, by some spiritual sense,—for the Creator never
  • made another being so sensitive as this,—he knew that no friendly
  • hand was pulling at his heart-strings, and that an eye was looking
  • curiously into him, which sought only evil, and found it. But he knew
  • not that the eye and hand were mine! With the superstition common to
  • his brotherhood, he fancied himself given over to a fiend, to be
  • tortured with frightful dreams, and desperate thoughts, the sting of
  • remorse, and despair of pardon; as a foretaste of what awaits him
  • beyond the grave. But it was the constant shadow of my presence!—the
  • closest propinquity of the man whom he had most vilely wronged!—and
  • who had grown to exist only by this perpetual poison of the direst
  • revenge! Yea, indeed!—he did not err!—there was a fiend at his
  • elbow! A mortal man, with once a human heart, has become a fiend for
  • his especial torment!”
  • The unfortunate physician, while uttering these words, lifted his
  • hands with a look of horror, as if he had beheld some frightful shape,
  • which he could not recognize, usurping the place of his own image in
  • a glass. It was one of those moments—which sometimes occur only at
  • the interval of years—when a man's moral aspect is faithfully
  • revealed to his mind's eye. Not improbably, he had never before viewed
  • himself as he did now.
  • “Hast thou not tortured him enough?” said Hester, noticing the old
  • man's look. “Has he not paid thee all?”
  • “No!—no!—He has but increased the debt!” answered the physician; and
  • as he proceeded his manner lost its fiercer characteristics, and
  • subsided into gloom. “Dost thou remember me, Hester, as I was nine
  • years agone? Even then, I was in the autumn of my days, nor was it the
  • early autumn. But all my life had been made up of earnest, studious,
  • thoughtful, quiet years, bestowed faithfully for the increase of mine
  • own knowledge, and faithfully, too, though this latter object was but
  • casual to the other,—faithfully for the advancement of human welfare.
  • No life had been more peaceful and innocent than mine; few lives so
  • rich with benefits conferred. Dost thou remember me? Was I not, though
  • you might deem me cold, nevertheless a man thoughtful for others,
  • craving little for himself,—kind, true, just, and of constant, if not
  • warm affections? Was I not all this?”
  • “All this, and more,” said Hester.
  • “And what am I now?” demanded he, looking into her face, and
  • permitting the whole evil within him to be written on his features. “I
  • have already told thee what I am! A fiend! Who made me so?”
  • “It was myself!” cried Hester, shuddering. “It was I, not less than
  • he. Why hast thou not avenged thyself on me?”
  • “I have left thee to the scarlet letter,” replied Roger Chillingworth.
  • “If that have not avenged me, I can do no more!”
  • He laid his finger on it, with a smile.
  • “It has avenged thee!” answered Hester Prynne.
  • “I judged no less,” said the physician. “And now, what wouldst thou
  • with me touching this man?”
  • “I must reveal the secret,” answered Hester, firmly. “He must discern
  • thee in thy true character. What may be the result, I know not. But
  • this long debt of confidence, due from me to him, whose bane and ruin
  • I have been, shall at length be paid. So far as concerns the overthrow
  • or preservation of his fair fame and his earthly state, and perchance
  • his life, he is in thy hands. Nor do I,—whom the scarlet letter has
  • disciplined to truth, though it be the truth of red-hot iron, entering
  • into the soul,—nor do I perceive such advantage in his living any
  • longer a life of ghastly emptiness, that I shall stoop to implore thy
  • mercy. Do with him as thou wilt! There is no good for him,—no good
  • for me,—no good for thee! There is no good for little Pearl! There is
  • no path to guide us out of this dismal maze!”
  • “Woman, I could wellnigh pity thee!” said Roger Chillingworth, unable
  • to restrain a thrill of admiration too; for there was a quality almost
  • majestic in the despair which she expressed. “Thou hadst great
  • elements. Peradventure, hadst thou met earlier with a better love than
  • mine, this evil had not been. I pity thee, for the good that has been
  • wasted in thy nature!”
  • “And I thee,” answered Hester Prynne, “for the hatred that has
  • transformed a wise and just man to a fiend! Wilt thou yet purge it out
  • of thee, and be once more human? If not for his sake, then doubly for
  • thine own! Forgive, and leave his further retribution to the Power
  • that claims it! I said, but now, that there could be no good event for
  • him, or thee, or me, who are here wandering together in this gloomy
  • maze of evil, and stumbling, at every step, over the guilt wherewith
  • we have strewn our path. It is not so! There might be good for thee,
  • and thee alone, since thou hast been deeply wronged, and hast it at
  • thy will to pardon. Wilt thou give up that only privilege? Wilt thou
  • reject that priceless benefit?”
  • “Peace, Hester, peace!” replied the old man, with gloomy sternness.
  • “It is not granted me to pardon. I have no such power as thou tellest
  • me of. My old faith, long forgotten, comes back to me, and explains
  • all that we do, and all we suffer. By thy first step awry thou didst
  • plant the germ of evil; but since that moment, it has all been a dark
  • necessity. Ye that have wronged me are not sinful, save in a kind of
  • typical illusion; neither am I fiend-like, who have snatched a fiend's
  • office from his hands. It is our fate. Let the black flower blossom as
  • it may! Now go thy ways, and deal as thou wilt with yonder man.”
  • He waved his hand, and betook himself again to his employment of
  • gathering herbs.
  • [Illustration: Mandrake]
  • [Illustration]
  • XV.
  • HESTER AND PEARL.
  • So Roger Chillingworth—a deformed old figure, with a face that
  • haunted men's memories longer than they liked—took leave of Hester
  • Prynne, and went stooping away along the earth. He gathered here and
  • there an herb, or grubbed up a root, and put it into the basket on his
  • arm. His gray beard almost touched the ground, as he crept onward.
  • Hester gazed after him a little while, looking with a half-fantastic
  • curiosity to see whether the tender grass of early spring would not be
  • blighted beneath him, and show the wavering track of his footsteps,
  • sere and brown, across its cheerful verdure. She wondered what sort of
  • herbs they were, which the old man was so sedulous to gather. Would
  • not the earth, quickened to an evil purpose by the sympathy of his
  • eye, greet him with poisonous shrubs, of species hitherto unknown,
  • that would start up under his fingers? Or might it suffice him, that
  • every wholesome growth should be converted into something deleterious
  • and malignant at his touch? Did the sun, which shone so brightly
  • everywhere else, really fall upon him? Or was there, as it rather
  • seemed, a circle of ominous shadow moving along with his deformity,
  • whichever way he turned himself? And whither was he now going? Would
  • he not suddenly sink into the earth, leaving a barren and blasted
  • spot, where, in due course of time, would be seen deadly nightshade,
  • dogwood, henbane, and whatever else of vegetable wickedness the
  • climate could produce, all flourishing with hideous luxuriance? Or
  • would he spread bat's wings and flee away, looking so much the uglier,
  • the higher he rose towards heaven?
  • [Illustration: “He gathered herbs here and there”]
  • “Be it sin or no,” said Hester Prynne, bitterly, as she still gazed
  • after him, “I hate the man!”
  • She upbraided herself for the sentiment, but could not overcome or
  • lessen it. Attempting to do so, she thought of those long-past days,
  • in a distant land, when he used to emerge at eventide from the
  • seclusion of his study, and sit down in the firelight of their home,
  • and in the light of her nuptial smile. He needed to bask himself in
  • that smile, he said, in order that the chill of so many lonely hours
  • among his books might be taken off the scholar's heart. Such scenes
  • had once appeared not otherwise than happy, but now, as viewed through
  • the dismal medium of her subsequent life, they classed themselves
  • among her ugliest remembrances. She marvelled how such scenes could
  • have been! She marvelled how she could ever have been wrought upon to
  • marry him! She deemed it her crime most to be repented of, that she
  • had ever endured, and reciprocated, the lukewarm grasp of his hand,
  • and had suffered the smile of her lips and eyes to mingle and melt
  • into his own. And it seemed a fouler offence committed by Roger
  • Chillingworth, than any which had since been done him, that, in the
  • time when her heart knew no better, he had persuaded her to fancy
  • herself happy by his side.
  • “Yes, I hate him!” repeated Hester, more bitterly than before. “He
  • betrayed me! He has done me worse wrong than I did him!”
  • Let men tremble to win the hand of woman, unless they win along with
  • it the utmost passion of her heart! Else it may be their miserable
  • fortune, as it was Roger Chillingworth's, when some mightier touch
  • than their own may have awakened all her sensibilities, to be
  • reproached even for the calm content, the marble image of happiness,
  • which they will have imposed upon her as the warm reality. But Hester
  • ought long ago to have done with this injustice. What did it betoken?
  • Had seven long years, under the torture of the scarlet letter,
  • inflicted so much of misery, and wrought out no repentance?
  • The emotions of that brief space, while she stood gazing after the
  • crooked figure of old Roger Chillingworth, threw a dark light on
  • Hester's state of mind, revealing much that she might not otherwise
  • have acknowledged to herself.
  • He being gone, she summoned back her child.
  • “Pearl! Little Pearl! Where are you?”
  • [Illustration: Pearl on the Sea-Shore]
  • Pearl, whose activity of spirit never flagged, had been at no loss for
  • amusement while her mother talked with the old gatherer of herbs. At
  • first, as already told, she had flirted fancifully with her own image
  • in a pool of water, beckoning the phantom forth, and—as it declined
  • to venture—seeking a passage for herself into its sphere of
  • impalpable earth and unattainable sky. Soon finding, however, that
  • either she or the image was unreal, she turned elsewhere for better
  • pastime. She made little boats out of birch-bark, and freighted them
  • with snail-shells, and sent out more ventures on the mighty deep than
  • any merchant in New England; but the larger part of them foundered
  • near the shore. She seized a live horseshoe by the tail, and made
  • prize of several five-fingers, and laid out a jelly-fish to melt in
  • the warm sun. Then she took up the white foam, that streaked the line
  • of the advancing tide, and threw it upon the breeze, scampering after
  • it, with winged footsteps, to catch the great snow-flakes ere they
  • fell. Perceiving a flock of beach-birds, that fed and fluttered along
  • the shore, the naughty child picked up her apron full of pebbles, and,
  • creeping from rock to rock after these small sea-fowl, displayed
  • remarkable dexterity in pelting them. One little gray bird, with a
  • white breast, Pearl was almost sure, had been hit by a pebble, and
  • fluttered away with a broken wing. But then the elf-child sighed, and
  • gave up her sport; because it grieved her to have done harm to a
  • little being that was as wild as the sea-breeze, or as wild as Pearl
  • herself.
  • Her final employment was to gather sea-weed, of various kinds, and
  • make herself a scarf, or mantle, and a head-dress, and thus assume the
  • aspect of a little mermaid. She inherited her mother's gift for
  • devising drapery and costume. As the last touch to her mermaid's garb,
  • Pearl took some eel-grass, and imitated, as best she could, on her own
  • bosom, the decoration with which she was so familiar on her mother's.
  • A letter,—the letter A,—but freshly green, instead of scarlet! The
  • child bent her chin upon her breast, and contemplated this device with
  • strange interest; even as if the one only thing for which she had been
  • sent into the world was to make out its hidden import.
  • “I wonder if mother will ask me what it means?” thought Pearl.
  • Just then, she heard her mother's voice, and flitting along as lightly
  • as one of the little sea-birds, appeared before Hester Prynne,
  • dancing, laughing, and pointing her finger to the ornament upon her
  • bosom.
  • “My little Pearl,” said Hester, after a moment's silence, “the green
  • letter, and on thy childish bosom, has no purport. But dost thou know,
  • my child, what this letter means which thy mother is doomed to wear?”
  • “Yes, mother,” said the child. “It is the great letter A. Thou hast
  • taught me in the horn-book.”
  • Hester looked steadily into her little face; but, though there was
  • that singular expression which she had so often remarked in her black
  • eyes, she could not satisfy herself whether Pearl really attached any
  • meaning to the symbol. She felt a morbid desire to ascertain the
  • point.
  • “Dost thou know, child, wherefore thy mother wears this letter?”
  • “Truly do I!” answered Pearl, looking brightly into her mother's face.
  • “It is for the same reason that the minister keeps his hand over his
  • heart!”
  • “And what reason is that?” asked Hester, half smiling at the absurd
  • incongruity of the child's observation; but, on second thoughts,
  • turning pale. “What has the letter to do with any heart, save mine?”
  • “Nay, mother, I have told all I know,” said Pearl, more seriously than
  • she was wont to speak. “Ask yonder old man whom thou hast been talking
  • with! It may be he can tell. But in good earnest now, mother dear,
  • what does this scarlet letter mean?—and why dost thou wear it on thy
  • bosom?—and why does the minister keep his hand over his heart?”
  • She took her mother's hand in both her own, and gazed into her eyes
  • with an earnestness that was seldom seen in her wild and capricious
  • character. The thought occurred to Hester, that the child might really
  • be seeking to approach her with childlike confidence, and doing what
  • she could, and as intelligently as she knew how, to establish a
  • meeting-point of sympathy. It showed Pearl in an unwonted aspect.
  • Heretofore, the mother, while loving her child with the intensity of a
  • sole affection, had schooled herself to hope for little other return
  • than the waywardness of an April breeze; which spends its time in airy
  • sport, and has its gusts of inexplicable passion, and is petulant in
  • its best of moods, and chills oftener than caresses you, when you take
  • it to your bosom; in requital of which misdemeanors, it will
  • sometimes, of its own vague purpose, kiss your cheek with a kind of
  • doubtful tenderness, and play gently with your hair, and then be gone
  • about its other idle business, leaving a dreamy pleasure at your
  • heart. And this, moreover, was a mother's estimate of the child's
  • disposition. Any other observer might have seen few but unamiable
  • traits, and have given them a far darker coloring. But now the idea
  • came strongly into Hester's mind, that Pearl, with her remarkable
  • precocity and acuteness, might already have approached the age when
  • she could be made a friend, and intrusted with as much of her mother's
  • sorrows as could be imparted, without irreverence either to the parent
  • or the child. In the little chaos of Pearl's character there might be
  • seen emerging—and could have been, from the very first—the steadfast
  • principles of an unflinching courage,—an uncontrollable will,—a
  • sturdy pride, which might be disciplined into self-respect,—and a
  • bitter scorn of many things, which, when examined, might be found to
  • have the taint of falsehood in them. She possessed affections, too,
  • though hitherto acrid and disagreeable, as are the richest flavors of
  • unripe fruit. With all these sterling attributes, thought Hester, the
  • evil which she inherited from her mother must be great indeed, if a
  • noble woman do not grow out of this elfish child.
  • Pearl's inevitable tendency to hover about the enigma of the scarlet
  • letter seemed an innate quality of her being. From the earliest epoch
  • of her conscious life, she had entered upon this as her appointed
  • mission. Hester had often fancied that Providence had a design of
  • justice and retribution, in endowing the child with this marked
  • propensity; but never, until now, had she bethought herself to ask,
  • whether, linked with that design, there might not likewise be a
  • purpose of mercy and beneficence. If little Pearl were entertained
  • with faith and trust, as a spirit messenger no less than an earthly
  • child, might it not be her errand to soothe away the sorrow that lay
  • cold in her mother's heart, and converted it into a tomb?—and to help
  • her to overcome the passion, once so wild, and even yet neither dead
  • nor asleep, but only imprisoned within the same tomb-like heart?
  • Such were some of the thoughts that now stirred in Hester's mind, with
  • as much vivacity of impression as if they had actually been whispered
  • into her ear. And there was little Pearl, all this while, holding her
  • mother's hand in both her own, and turning her face upward, while she
  • put these searching questions, once, and again, and still a third
  • time.
  • “What does the letter mean, mother?—and why dost thou wear it?—and
  • why does the minister keep his hand over his heart?”
  • “What shall I say?” thought Hester to herself. “No! If this be the
  • price of the child's sympathy, I cannot pay it.”
  • Then she spoke aloud.
  • “Silly Pearl,” said she, “what questions are these? There are many
  • things in this world that a child must not ask about. What know I of
  • the minister's heart? And as for the scarlet letter, I wear it for the
  • sake of its gold-thread.”
  • In all the seven bygone years, Hester Prynne had never before been
  • false to the symbol on her bosom. It may be that it was the talisman
  • of a stern and severe, but yet a guardian spirit, who now forsook her;
  • as recognizing that, in spite of his strict watch over her heart, some
  • new evil had crept into it, or some old one had never been expelled.
  • As for little Pearl, the earnestness soon passed out of her face.
  • But the child did not see fit to let the matter drop. Two or three
  • times, as her mother and she went homeward, and as often at
  • supper-time, and while Hester was putting her to bed, and once after
  • she seemed to be fairly asleep, Pearl looked up, with mischief
  • gleaming in her black eyes.
  • “Mother,” said she, “what does the scarlet letter mean?”
  • And the next morning, the first indication the child gave of being
  • awake was by popping up her head from the pillow, and making that
  • other inquiry, which she had so unaccountably connected with her
  • investigations about the scarlet letter:—
  • “Mother!—Mother!—Why does the minister keep his hand over his
  • heart?”
  • “Hold thy tongue, naughty child!” answered her mother, with an
  • asperity that she had never permitted to herself before. “Do not tease
  • me; else I shall shut thee into the dark closet!”
  • [Illustration]
  • [Illustration]
  • XVI.
  • A FOREST WALK.
  • Hester Prynne remained constant in her resolve to make known to Mr.
  • Dimmesdale, at whatever risk of present pain or ulterior consequences,
  • the true character of the man who had crept into his intimacy. For
  • several days, however, she vainly sought an opportunity of addressing
  • him in some of the meditative walks which she knew him to be in the
  • habit of taking, along the shores of the peninsula, or on the wooded
  • hills of the neighboring country. There would have been no scandal,
  • indeed, nor peril to the holy whiteness of the clergyman's good fame,
  • had she visited him in his own study; where many a penitent, ere now,
  • had confessed sins of perhaps as deep a dye as the one betokened by
  • the scarlet letter. But, partly that she dreaded the secret or
  • undisguised interference of old Roger Chillingworth, and partly that
  • her conscious heart imputed suspicion where none could have been felt,
  • and partly that both the minister and she would need the whole wide
  • world to breathe in, while they talked together,—for all these
  • reasons, Hester never thought of meeting him in any narrower privacy
  • than beneath the open sky.
  • At last, while attending in a sick-chamber, whither the Reverend Mr.
  • Dimmesdale had been summoned to make a prayer, she learnt that he had
  • gone, the day before, to visit the Apostle Eliot, among his Indian
  • converts. He would probably return, by a certain hour, in the
  • afternoon of the morrow. Betimes, therefore, the next day, Hester took
  • little Pearl,—who was necessarily the companion of all her mother's
  • expeditions, however inconvenient her presence,—and set forth.
  • The road, after the two wayfarers had crossed from the peninsula to
  • the mainland, was no other than a footpath. It straggled onward into
  • the mystery of the primeval forest. This hemmed it in so narrowly, and
  • stood so black and dense on either side, and disclosed such imperfect
  • glimpses of the sky above, that, to Hester's mind, it imaged not amiss
  • the moral wilderness in which she had so long been wandering. The day
  • was chill and sombre. Overhead was a gray expanse of cloud, slightly
  • stirred, however, by a breeze; so that a gleam of flickering sunshine
  • might now and then be seen at its solitary play along the path. This
  • flitting cheerfulness was always at the farther extremity of some long
  • vista through the forest. The sportive sunlight—feebly sportive, at
  • best, in the predominant pensiveness of the day and scene—withdrew
  • itself as they came nigh, and left the spots where it had danced the
  • drearier, because they had hoped to find them bright.
  • “Mother,” said little Pearl, “the sunshine does not love you. It runs
  • away and hides itself, because it is afraid of something on your
  • bosom. Now, see! There it is, playing, a good way off. Stand you
  • here, and let me run and catch it. I am but a child. It will not flee
  • from me; for I wear nothing on my bosom yet!”
  • “Nor ever will, my child, I hope,” said Hester.
  • “And why not, mother?” asked Pearl, stopping short, just at the
  • beginning of her race. “Will not it come of its own accord, when I am
  • a woman grown?”
  • “Run away, child,” answered her mother, “and catch the sunshine! It
  • will soon be gone.”
  • Pearl set forth, at a great pace, and, as Hester smiled to perceive,
  • did actually catch the sunshine, and stood laughing in the midst of
  • it, all brightened by its splendor, and scintillating with the
  • vivacity excited by rapid motion. The light lingered about the lonely
  • child, as if glad of such a playmate, until her mother had drawn
  • almost nigh enough to step into the magic circle too.
  • “It will go now,” said Pearl, shaking her head.
  • “See!” answered Hester, smiling. “Now I can stretch out my hand, and
  • grasp some of it.”
  • As she attempted to do so, the sunshine vanished; or, to judge from
  • the bright expression that was dancing on Pearl's features, her mother
  • could have fancied that the child had absorbed it into herself, and
  • would give it forth again, with a gleam about her path, as they should
  • plunge into some gloomier shade. There was no other attribute that so
  • much impressed her with a sense of new and untransmitted vigor in
  • Pearl's nature, as this never-failing vivacity of spirits; she had not
  • the disease of sadness, which almost all children, in these latter
  • days, inherit, with the scrofula, from the troubles of their
  • ancestors. Perhaps this too was a disease, and but the reflex of the
  • wild energy with which Hester had fought against her sorrows, before
  • Pearl's birth. It was certainly a doubtful charm, imparting a hard,
  • metallic lustre to the child's character. She wanted—what some people
  • want throughout life—a grief that should deeply touch her, and thus
  • humanize and make her capable of sympathy. But there was time enough
  • yet for little Pearl.
  • “Come, my child!” said Hester, looking about her from the spot where
  • Pearl had stood still in the sunshine. “We will sit down a little way
  • within the wood, and rest ourselves.”
  • “I am not aweary, mother,” replied the little girl. “But you may sit
  • down, if you will tell me a story meanwhile.”
  • “A story, child!” said Hester. “And about what?”
  • “O, a story about the Black Man,” answered Pearl, taking hold of her
  • mother's gown, and looking up, half earnestly, half mischievously,
  • into her face. “How he haunts this forest, and carries a book with
  • him,—a big, heavy book, with iron clasps; and how this ugly Black Man
  • offers his book and an iron pen to everybody that meets him here among
  • the trees; and they are to write their names with their own blood. And
  • then he sets his mark on their bosoms! Didst thou ever meet the Black
  • Man, mother?”
  • “And who told you this story, Pearl?” asked her mother, recognizing a
  • common superstition of the period.
  • “It was the old dame in the chimney-corner, at the house where you
  • watched last night,” said the child. “But she fancied me asleep while
  • she was talking of it. She said that a thousand and a thousand people
  • had met him here, and had written in his book, and have his mark on
  • them. And that ugly-tempered lady, old Mistress Hibbins, was one. And,
  • mother, the old dame said that this scarlet letter was the Black Man's
  • mark on thee, and that it glows like a red flame when thou meetest
  • him at midnight, here in the dark wood. Is it true, mother? And dost
  • thou go to meet him in the night-time?”
  • “Didst thou ever awake, and find thy mother gone?” asked Hester.
  • “Not that I remember,” said the child. “If thou fearest to leave me in
  • our cottage, thou mightest take me along with thee. I would very
  • gladly go! But, mother, tell me now! Is there such a Black Man? And
  • didst thou ever meet him? And is this his mark?”
  • “Wilt thou let me be at peace, if I once tell thee?” asked her mother.
  • “Yes, if thou tellest me all,” answered Pearl.
  • “Once in my life I met the Black Man!” said her mother. “This scarlet
  • letter is his mark!”
  • Thus conversing, they entered sufficiently deep into the wood to
  • secure themselves from the observation of any casual passenger along
  • the forest track. Here they sat down on a luxuriant heap of moss;
  • which, at some epoch of the preceding century, had been a gigantic
  • pine, with its roots and trunk in the darksome shade, and its head
  • aloft in the upper atmosphere. It was a little dell where they had
  • seated themselves, with a leaf-strewn bank rising gently on either
  • side, and a brook flowing through the midst, over a bed of fallen and
  • drowned leaves. The trees impending over it had flung down great
  • branches, from time to time, which choked up the current and compelled
  • it to form eddies and black depths at some points; while, in its
  • swifter and livelier passages, there appeared a channel-way of
  • pebbles, and brown, sparkling sand. Letting the eyes follow along the
  • course of the stream, they could catch the reflected light from its
  • water, at some short distance within the forest, but soon lost all
  • traces of it amid the bewilderment of tree-trunks and underbrush, and
  • here and there a huge rock covered over with gray lichens. All these
  • giant trees and bowlders of granite seemed intent on making a mystery
  • of the course of this small brook; fearing, perhaps, that, with its
  • never-ceasing loquacity, it should whisper tales out of the heart of
  • the old forest whence it flowed, or mirror its revelations on the
  • smooth surface of a pool. Continually, indeed, as it stole onward, the
  • streamlet kept up a babble, kind, quiet, soothing, but melancholy,
  • like the voice of a young child that was spending its infancy without
  • playfulness, and knew not how to be merry among sad acquaintance and
  • events of sombre hue.
  • “O brook! O foolish and tiresome little brook!” cried Pearl, after
  • listening awhile to its talk. “Why art thou so sad? Pluck up a spirit,
  • and do not be all the time sighing and murmuring!”
  • But the brook, in the course of its little lifetime among the
  • forest-trees, had gone through so solemn an experience that it could
  • not help talking about it, and seemed to have nothing else to say.
  • Pearl resembled the brook, inasmuch as the current of her life gushed
  • from a well-spring as mysterious, and had flowed through scenes
  • shadowed as heavily with gloom. But, unlike the little stream, she
  • danced and sparkled, and prattled airily along her course.
  • “What does this sad little brook say, mother?” inquired she.
  • “If thou hadst a sorrow of thine own, the brook might tell thee of
  • it,” answered her mother, “even as it is telling me of mine! But now,
  • Pearl, I hear a footstep along the path, and the noise of one putting
  • aside the branches. I would have thee betake thyself to play, and
  • leave me to speak with him that comes yonder.”
  • “Is it the Black Man?” asked Pearl.
  • “Wilt thou go and play, child?” repeated her mother. “But do not stray
  • far into the wood. And take heed that thou come at my first call.”
  • “Yes, mother,” answered Pearl. “But if it be the Black Man, wilt thou
  • not let me stay a moment, and look at him, with his big book under his
  • arm?”
  • “Go, silly child!” said her mother, impatiently. “It is no Black Man!
  • Thou canst see him now, through the trees. It is the minister!”
  • “And so it is!” said the child. “And, mother, he has his hand over his
  • heart! Is it because, when the minister wrote his name in the book,
  • the Black Man set his mark in that place? But why does he not wear it
  • outside his bosom, as thou dost, mother?”
  • “Go now, child, and thou shalt tease me as thou wilt another time,”
  • cried Hester Prynne. “But do not stray far. Keep where thou canst hear
  • the babble of the brook.”
  • The child went singing away, following up the current of the brook,
  • and striving to mingle a more lightsome cadence with its melancholy
  • voice. But the little stream would not be comforted, and still kept
  • telling its unintelligible secret of some very mournful mystery that
  • had happened—or making a prophetic lamentation about something that
  • was yet to happen—within the verge of the dismal forest. So Pearl,
  • who had enough of shadow in her own little life, chose to break off
  • all acquaintance with this repining brook. She set herself, therefore,
  • to gathering violets and wood-anemones, and some scarlet columbines
  • that she found growing in the crevices of a high rock.
  • When her elf-child had departed, Hester Prynne made a step or two
  • towards the track that led through the forest, but still remained
  • under the deep shadow of the trees. She beheld the minister advancing
  • along the path, entirely alone, and leaning on a staff which he had
  • cut by the wayside. He looked haggard and feeble, and betrayed a
  • nerveless despondency in his air, which had never so remarkably
  • characterized him in his walks about the settlement, nor in any other
  • situation where he deemed himself liable to notice. Here it was
  • wofully visible, in this intense seclusion of the forest, which of
  • itself would have been a heavy trial to the spirits. There was a
  • listlessness in his gait; as if he saw no reason for taking one step
  • farther, nor felt any desire to do so, but would have been glad, could
  • he be glad of anything, to fling himself down at the root of the
  • nearest tree, and lie there passive, forevermore. The leaves might
  • bestrew him, and the soil gradually accumulate and form a little
  • hillock over his frame, no matter whether there were life in it or no.
  • Death was too definite an object to be wished for, or avoided.
  • To Hester's eye, the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale exhibited no symptom of
  • positive and vivacious suffering, except that, as little Pearl had
  • remarked, he kept his hand over his heart.
  • [Illustration]
  • [Illustration]
  • XVII.
  • THE PASTOR AND HIS PARISHIONER.
  • Slowly as the minister walked, he had almost gone by, before Hester
  • Prynne could gather voice enough to attract his observation. At
  • length, she succeeded.
  • “Arthur Dimmesdale!” she said, faintly at first; then louder, but
  • hoarsely. “Arthur Dimmesdale!”
  • “Who speaks?” answered the minister.
  • Gathering himself quickly up, he stood more erect, like a man taken by
  • surprise in a mood to which he was reluctant to have witnesses.
  • Throwing his eyes anxiously in the direction of the voice, he
  • indistinctly beheld a form under the trees, clad in garments so
  • sombre, and so little relieved from the gray twilight into which the
  • clouded sky and the heavy foliage had darkened the noontide, that he
  • knew not whether it were a woman or a shadow. It may be, that his
  • pathway through life was haunted thus, by a spectre that had stolen
  • out from among his thoughts.
  • He made a step nigher, and discovered the scarlet letter.
  • “Hester! Hester Prynne!” said he. “Is it thou? Art thou in life?”
  • “Even so!” she answered. “In such life as has been mine these seven
  • years past! And thou, Arthur Dimmesdale, dost thou yet live?”
  • It was no wonder that they thus questioned one another's actual and
  • bodily existence, and even doubted of their own. So strangely did they
  • meet, in the dim wood, that it was like the first encounter, in the
  • world beyond the grave, of two spirits who had been intimately
  • connected in their former life, but now stood coldly shuddering, in
  • mutual dread; as not yet familiar with their state, nor wonted to the
  • companionship of disembodied beings. Each a ghost, and awe-stricken at
  • the other ghost! They were awe-stricken likewise at themselves;
  • because the crisis flung back to them their consciousness, and
  • revealed to each heart its history and experience, as life never does,
  • except at such breathless epochs. The soul beheld its features in the
  • mirror of the passing moment. It was with fear, and tremulously, and,
  • as it were, by a slow, reluctant necessity, that Arthur Dimmesdale put
  • forth his hand, chill as death, and touched the chill hand of Hester
  • Prynne. The grasp, cold as it was, took away what was dreariest in the
  • interview. They now felt themselves, at least, inhabitants of the same
  • sphere.
  • Without a word more spoken,—neither he nor she assuming the guidance,
  • but with an unexpressed consent,—they glided back into the shadow of
  • the woods, whence Hester had emerged, and sat down on the heap of moss
  • where she and Pearl had before been sitting. When they found voice to
  • speak, it was, at first, only to utter remarks and inquiries such as
  • any two acquaintance might have made, about the gloomy sky, the
  • threatening storm, and, next, the health of each. Thus they went
  • onward, not boldly, but step by step, into the themes that were
  • brooding deepest in their hearts. So long estranged by fate and
  • circumstances, they needed something slight and casual to run before,
  • and throw open the doors of intercourse, so that their real thoughts
  • might be led across the threshold.
  • After a while, the minister fixed his eyes on Hester Prynne's.
  • “Hester,” said he, “hast thou found peace?”
  • She smiled drearily, looking down upon her bosom.
  • “Hast thou?” she asked.
  • “None!—nothing but despair!” he answered. “What else could I look
  • for, being what I am, and leading such a life as mine? Were I an
  • atheist,—a man devoid of conscience,—a wretch with coarse and brutal
  • instincts,—I might have found peace, long ere now. Nay, I never
  • should have lost it! But, as matters stand with my soul, whatever of
  • good capacity there originally was in me, all of God's gifts that were
  • the choicest have become the ministers of spiritual torment. Hester, I
  • am most miserable!”
  • “The people reverence thee,” said Hester. “And surely thou workest
  • good among them! Doth this bring thee no comfort?”
  • “More misery, Hester!—only the more misery!” answered the clergyman,
  • with a bitter smile. “As concerns the good which I may appear to do, I
  • have no faith in it. It must needs be a delusion. What can a ruined
  • soul, like mine, effect towards the redemption of other souls?—or a
  • polluted soul towards their purification? And as for the people's
  • reverence, would that it were turned to scorn and hatred! Canst thou
  • deem it, Hester, a consolation, that I must stand up in my pulpit, and
  • meet so many eyes turned upward to my face, as if the light of heaven
  • were beaming from it!—must see my flock hungry for the truth, and
  • listening to my words as if a tongue of Pentecost were speaking!—and
  • then look inward, and discern the black reality of what they idolize?
  • I have laughed, in bitterness and agony of heart, at the contrast
  • between what I seem and what I am! And Satan laughs at it!”
  • “You wrong yourself in this,” said Hester, gently. “You have deeply
  • and sorely repented. Your sin is left behind you, in the days long
  • past. Your present life is not less holy, in very truth, than it seems
  • in people's eyes. Is there no reality in the penitence thus sealed and
  • witnessed by good works? And wherefore should it not bring you peace?”
  • “No, Hester, no!” replied the clergyman. “There is no substance in it!
  • It is cold and dead, and can do nothing for me! Of penance, I have had
  • enough! Of penitence, there has been none! Else, I should long ago
  • have thrown off these garments of mock holiness, and have shown myself
  • to mankind as they will see me at the judgment-seat. Happy are you,
  • Hester, that wear the scarlet letter openly upon your bosom! Mine
  • burns in secret! Thou little knowest what a relief it is, after the
  • torment of a seven years' cheat, to look into an eye that recognizes
  • me for what I am! Had I one friend,—or were it my worst enemy!—to
  • whom, when sickened with the praises of all other men, I could daily
  • betake myself, and be known as the vilest of all sinners, methinks my
  • soul might keep itself alive thereby. Even thus much of truth would
  • save me! But, now, it is all falsehood!—all emptiness!—all death!”
  • Hester Prynne looked into his face, but hesitated to speak. Yet,
  • uttering his long-restrained emotions so vehemently as he did, his
  • words here offered her the very point of circumstances in which to
  • interpose what she came to say. She conquered her fears, and spoke.
  • “Such a friend as thou hast even now wished for,” said she, “with whom
  • to weep over thy sin, thou hast in me, the partner of it!”—Again she
  • hesitated, but brought out the words with an effort.—“Thou hast long
  • had such an enemy, and dwellest with him, under the same roof!”
  • The minister started to his feet, gasping for breath, and clutching at
  • his heart, as if he would have torn it out of his bosom.
  • “Ha! What sayest thou!” cried he. “An enemy! And under mine own roof!
  • What mean you?”
  • Hester Prynne was now fully sensible of the deep injury for which she
  • was responsible to this unhappy man, in permitting him to lie for so
  • many years, or, indeed, for a single moment, at the mercy of one whose
  • purposes could not be other than malevolent. The very contiguity of
  • his enemy, beneath whatever mask the latter might conceal himself, was
  • enough to disturb the magnetic sphere of a being so sensitive as
  • Arthur Dimmesdale. There had been a period when Hester was less alive
  • to this consideration; or, perhaps, in the misanthropy of her own
  • trouble, she left the minister to bear what she might picture to
  • herself as a more tolerable doom. But of late, since the night of his
  • vigil, all her sympathies towards him had been both softened and
  • invigorated. She now read his heart more accurately. She doubted not,
  • that the continual presence of Roger Chillingworth,—the secret poison
  • of his malignity, infecting all the air about him,—and his authorized
  • interference, as a physician, with the minister's physical and
  • spiritual infirmities,—that these bad opportunities had been turned
  • to a cruel purpose. By means of them, the sufferer's conscience had
  • been kept in an irritated state, the tendency of which was, not to
  • cure by wholesome pain, but to disorganize and corrupt his spiritual
  • being. Its result, on earth, could hardly fail to be insanity, and
  • hereafter, that eternal alienation from the Good and True, of which
  • madness is perhaps the earthly type.
  • Such was the ruin to which she had brought the man, once,—nay, why
  • should we not speak it?—still so passionately loved! Hester felt that
  • the sacrifice of the clergyman's good name, and death itself, as she
  • had already told Roger Chillingworth, would have been infinitely
  • preferable to the alternative which she had taken upon herself to
  • choose. And now, rather than have had this grievous wrong to confess,
  • she would gladly have lain down on the forest-leaves, and died there,
  • at Arthur Dimmesdale's feet.
  • “O Arthur,” cried she, “forgive me! In all things else, I have striven
  • to be true! Truth was the one virtue which I might have held fast, and
  • did hold fast, through all extremity; save when thy good,—thy
  • life,—thy fame,—were put in question! Then I consented to a
  • deception. But a lie is never good, even though death threaten on the
  • other side! Dost thou not see what I would say? That old man!—the
  • physician!—he whom they call Roger Chillingworth!—he was my
  • husband!”
  • [Illustration: “Wilt thou yet forgive me?”]
  • The minister looked at her, for an instant, with all that violence of
  • passion, which—intermixed, in more shapes than one, with his higher,
  • purer, softer qualities—was, in fact, the portion of him which the
  • Devil claimed, and through which he sought to win the rest. Never was
  • there a blacker or a fiercer frown than Hester now encountered. For
  • the brief space that it lasted, it was a dark transfiguration. But his
  • character had been so much enfeebled by suffering, that even its
  • lower energies were incapable of more than a temporary struggle. He
  • sank down on the ground, and buried his face in his hands.
  • “I might have known it,” murmured he. “I did know it! Was not the
  • secret told me, in the natural recoil of my heart, at the first sight
  • of him, and as often as I have seen him since? Why did I not
  • understand? O Hester Prynne, thou little, little knowest all the
  • horror of this thing! And the shame!—the indelicacy!—the horrible
  • ugliness of this exposure of a sick and guilty heart to the very eye
  • that would gloat over it! Woman, woman, thou art accountable for this!
  • I cannot forgive thee!”
  • “Thou shalt forgive me!” cried Hester, flinging herself on the fallen
  • leaves beside him. “Let God punish! Thou shalt forgive!”
  • With sudden and desperate tenderness, she threw her arms around him,
  • and pressed his head against her bosom; little caring though his cheek
  • rested on the scarlet letter. He would have released himself, but
  • strove in vain to do so. Hester would not set him free, lest he should
  • look her sternly in the face. All the world had frowned on her,—for
  • seven long years had it frowned upon this lonely woman,—and still she
  • bore it all, nor ever once turned away her firm, sad eyes. Heaven,
  • likewise, had frowned upon her, and she had not died. But the frown of
  • this pale, weak, sinful, and sorrow-stricken man was what Hester could
  • not bear and live!
  • “Wilt thou yet forgive me?” she repeated, over and over again. “Wilt
  • thou not frown? Wilt thou forgive?”
  • “I do forgive you, Hester,” replied the minister, at length, with a
  • deep utterance, out of an abyss of sadness, but no anger. “I freely
  • forgive you now. May God forgive us both! We are not, Hester, the
  • worst sinners in the world. There is one worse than even the polluted
  • priest! That old man's revenge has been blacker than my sin. He has
  • violated, in cold blood, the sanctity of a human heart. Thou and I,
  • Hester, never did so!”
  • “Never, never!” whispered she. “What we did had a consecration of its
  • own. We felt it so! We said so to each other! Hast thou forgotten it?”
  • “Hush, Hester!” said Arthur Dimmesdale, rising from the ground. “No; I
  • have not forgotten!”
  • They sat down again, side by side, and hand clasped in hand, on the
  • mossy trunk of the fallen tree. Life had never brought them a gloomier
  • hour; it was the point whither their pathway had so long been tending,
  • and darkening ever, as it stole along;—and yet it enclosed a charm
  • that made them linger upon it, and claim another, and another, and,
  • after all, another moment. The forest was obscure around them, and
  • creaked with a blast that was passing through it. The boughs were
  • tossing heavily above their heads; while one solemn old tree groaned
  • dolefully to another, as if telling the sad story of the pair that sat
  • beneath, or constrained to forebode evil to come.
  • And yet they lingered. How dreary looked the forest-track that led
  • backward to the settlement, where Hester Prynne must take up again the
  • burden of her ignominy, and the minister the hollow mockery of his
  • good name! So they lingered an instant longer. No golden light had
  • ever been so precious as the gloom of this dark forest. Here, seen
  • only by his eyes, the scarlet letter need not burn into the bosom of
  • the fallen woman! Here, seen only by her eyes, Arthur Dimmesdale,
  • false to God and man, might be, for one moment, true!
  • He started at a thought that suddenly occurred to him.
  • “Hester,” cried he, “here is a new horror! Roger Chillingworth knows
  • your purpose to reveal his true character. Will he continue, then, to
  • keep our secret? What will now be the course of his revenge?”
  • “There is a strange secrecy in his nature,” replied Hester,
  • thoughtfully; “and it has grown upon him by the hidden practices of
  • his revenge. I deem it not likely that he will betray the secret. He
  • will doubtless seek other means of satiating his dark passion.”
  • “And I!—how am I to live longer, breathing the same air with this
  • deadly enemy?” exclaimed Arthur Dimmesdale, shrinking within himself,
  • and pressing his hand nervously against his heart,—a gesture that had
  • grown involuntary with him.
  • “Think for me, Hester! Thou art strong. Resolve for me!”
  • “Thou must dwell no longer with this man,” said Hester, slowly and
  • firmly. “Thy heart must be no longer under his evil eye!”
  • “It were far worse than death!” replied the minister. “But how to
  • avoid it? What choice remains to me? Shall I lie down again on these
  • withered leaves, where I cast myself when thou didst tell me what he
  • was? Must I sink down there, and die at once?”
  • “Alas, what a ruin has befallen thee!” said Hester, with the tears
  • gushing into her eyes. “Wilt thou die for very weakness? There is no
  • other cause!”
  • “The judgment of God is on me,” answered the conscience-stricken
  • priest. “It is too mighty for me to struggle with!”
  • “Heaven would show mercy,” rejoined Hester, “hadst thou but the
  • strength to take advantage of it.”
  • “Be thou strong for me!” answered he. “Advise me what to do.”
  • “Is the world, then, so narrow?” exclaimed Hester Prynne, fixing her
  • deep eyes on the minister's, and instinctively exercising a magnetic
  • power over a spirit so shattered and subdued that it could hardly hold
  • itself erect. “Doth the universe lie within the compass of yonder
  • town, which only a little time ago was but a leaf-strewn desert, as
  • lonely as this around us? Whither leads yonder forest-track? Backward
  • to the settlement, thou sayest! Yes; but onward, too. Deeper it goes,
  • and deeper, into the wilderness, less plainly to be seen at every
  • step; until, some few miles hence, the yellow leaves will show no
  • vestige of the white man's tread. There thou art free! So brief a
  • journey would bring thee from a world where thou hast been most
  • wretched, to one where thou mayest still be happy! Is there not shade
  • enough in all this boundless forest to hide thy heart from the gaze of
  • Roger Chillingworth?”
  • “Yes, Hester; but only under the fallen leaves!” replied the minister,
  • with a sad smile.
  • “Then there is the broad pathway of the sea!” continued Hester. “It
  • brought thee hither. If thou so choose, it will bear thee back again.
  • In our native land, whether in some remote rural village or in vast
  • London,—or, surely, in Germany, in France, in pleasant Italy,—thou
  • wouldst be beyond his power and knowledge! And what hast thou to do
  • with all these iron men, and their opinions? They have kept thy better
  • part in bondage too long already!”
  • “It cannot be!” answered the minister, listening as if he were called
  • upon to realize a dream. “I am powerless to go! Wretched and sinful as
  • I am, I have had no other thought than to drag on my earthly
  • existence in the sphere where Providence hath placed me. Lost as my
  • own soul is, I would still do what I may for other human souls! I dare
  • not quit my post, though an unfaithful sentinel, whose sure reward is
  • death and dishonor, when his dreary watch shall come to an end!”
  • “Thou art crushed under this seven years' weight of misery,” replied
  • Hester, fervently resolved to buoy him up with her own energy. “But
  • thou shalt leave it all behind thee! It shall not cumber thy steps, as
  • thou treadest along the forest-path; neither shalt thou freight the
  • ship with it, if thou prefer to cross the sea. Leave this wreck and
  • ruin here where it hath happened. Meddle no more with it! Begin all
  • anew! Hast thou exhausted possibility in the failure of this one
  • trial? Not so! The future is yet full of trial and success. There is
  • happiness to be enjoyed! There is good to be done! Exchange this false
  • life of thine for a true one. Be, if thy spirit summon thee to such a
  • mission, the teacher and apostle of the red men. Or,—as is more thy
  • nature,—be a scholar and a sage among the wisest and the most
  • renowned of the cultivated world. Preach! Write! Act! Do anything,
  • save to lie down and die! Give up this name of Arthur Dimmesdale, and
  • make thyself another, and a high one, such as thou canst wear without
  • fear or shame. Why shouldst thou tarry so much as one other day in the
  • torments that have so gnawed into thy life!—that have made thee
  • feeble to will and to do!—that will leave thee powerless even to
  • repent! Up, and away!”
  • “O Hester!” cried Arthur Dimmesdale, in whose eyes a fitful light,
  • kindled by her enthusiasm, flashed up and died away, “thou tellest of
  • running a race to a man whose knees are tottering beneath him! I must
  • die here! There is not the strength or courage left me to venture
  • into the wide, strange, difficult world, alone!”
  • It was the last expression of the despondency of a broken spirit. He
  • lacked energy to grasp the better fortune that seemed within his
  • reach.
  • He repeated the word.
  • “Alone, Hester!”
  • “Thou shalt not go alone!” answered she, in a deep whisper.
  • Then, all was spoken!
  • [Illustration]
  • [Illustration]
  • XVIII.
  • A FLOOD OF SUNSHINE.
  • Arthur Dimmesdale gazed into Hester's face with a look in which hope
  • and joy shone out, indeed, but with fear betwixt them, and a kind of
  • horror at her boldness, who had spoken what he vaguely hinted at, but
  • dared not speak.
  • But Hester Prynne, with a mind of native courage and activity, and for
  • so long a period not merely estranged, but outlawed, from society, had
  • habituated herself to such latitude of speculation as was altogether
  • foreign to the clergyman. She had wandered, without rule or guidance,
  • in a moral wilderness; as vast, as intricate and shadowy, as the
  • untamed forest, amid the gloom of which they were now holding a
  • colloquy that was to decide their fate. Her intellect and heart had
  • their home, as it were, in desert places, where she roamed as freely
  • as the wild Indian in his woods. For years past she had looked from
  • this estranged point of view at human institutions, and whatever
  • priests or legislators had established; criticising all with hardly
  • more reverence than the Indian would feel for the clerical band, the
  • judicial robe, the pillory, the gallows, the fireside, or the church.
  • The tendency of her fate and fortunes had been to set her free. The
  • scarlet letter was her passport into regions where other women dared
  • not tread. Shame, Despair, Solitude! These had been her
  • teachers,—stern and wild ones,—and they had made her strong, but
  • taught her much amiss.
  • The minister, on the other hand, had never gone through an experience
  • calculated to lead him beyond the scope of generally received laws;
  • although, in a single instance, he had so fearfully transgressed one
  • of the most sacred of them. But this had been a sin of passion, not of
  • principle, nor even purpose. Since that wretched epoch, he had
  • watched, with morbid zeal and minuteness, not his acts,—for those it
  • was easy to arrange,—but each breath of emotion, and his every
  • thought. At the head of the social system, as the clergymen of that
  • day stood, he was only the more trammelled by its regulations, its
  • principles, and even its prejudices. As a priest, the framework of his
  • order inevitably hemmed him in. As a man who had once sinned, but who
  • kept his conscience all alive and painfully sensitive by the fretting
  • of an unhealed wound, he might have been supposed safer within the
  • line of virtue than if he had never sinned at all.
  • Thus, we seem to see that, as regarded Hester Prynne, the whole seven
  • years of outlaw and ignominy had been little other than a preparation
  • for this very hour. But Arthur Dimmesdale! Were such a man once more
  • to fall, what plea could be urged in extenuation of his crime? None;
  • unless it avail him somewhat, that he was broken down by long and
  • exquisite suffering; that his mind was darkened and confused by the
  • very remorse which harrowed it; that, between fleeing as an avowed
  • criminal, and remaining as a hypocrite, conscience might find it hard
  • to strike the balance; that it was human to avoid the peril of death
  • and infamy, and the inscrutable machinations of an enemy; that,
  • finally, to this poor pilgrim, on his dreary and desert path, faint,
  • sick, miserable, there appeared a glimpse of human affection and
  • sympathy, a new life, and a true one, in exchange for the heavy doom
  • which he was now expiating. And be the stern and sad truth spoken,
  • that the breach which guilt has once made into the human soul is
  • never, in this mortal state, repaired. It may be watched and guarded;
  • so that the enemy shall not force his way again into the citadel, and
  • might even, in his subsequent assaults, select some other avenue, in
  • preference to that where he had formerly succeeded. But there is still
  • the ruined wall, and, near it, the stealthy tread of the foe that
  • would win over again his unforgotten triumph.
  • The struggle, if there were one, need not be described. Let it
  • suffice, that the clergyman resolved to flee, and not alone.
  • “If, in all these past seven years,” thought he, “I could recall one
  • instant of peace or hope, I would yet endure, for the sake of that
  • earnest of Heaven's mercy. But now,—since I am irrevocably
  • doomed,—wherefore should I not snatch the solace allowed to the
  • condemned culprit before his execution? Or, if this be the path to a
  • better life, as Hester would persuade me, I surely give up no fairer
  • prospect by pursuing it! Neither can I any longer live without her
  • companionship; so powerful is she to sustain,—so tender to soothe! O
  • Thou to whom I dare not lift mine eyes, wilt Thou yet pardon me!”
  • “Thou wilt go!” said Hester, calmly, as he met her glance.
  • The decision once made, a glow of strange enjoyment threw its
  • flickering brightness over the trouble of his breast. It was the
  • exhilarating effect—upon a prisoner just escaped from the dungeon of
  • his own heart—of breathing the wild, free atmosphere of an
  • unredeemed, unchristianized, lawless region. His spirit rose, as it
  • were, with a bound, and attained a nearer prospect of the sky, than
  • throughout all the misery which had kept him grovelling on the earth.
  • Of a deeply religious temperament, there was inevitably a tinge of the
  • devotional in his mood.
  • “Do I feel joy again?” cried he, wondering at himself. “Methought the
  • germ of it was dead in me! O Hester, thou art my better angel! I seem
  • to have flung myself—sick, sin-stained, and sorrow-blackened—down
  • upon these forest-leaves, and to have risen up all made anew, and with
  • new powers to glorify Him that hath been merciful! This is already the
  • better life! Why did we not find it sooner?”
  • “Let us not look back,” answered Hester Prynne. “The past is gone!
  • Wherefore should we linger upon it now? See! With this symbol, I undo
  • it all, and make it as it had never been!”
  • So speaking, she undid the clasp that fastened the scarlet letter,
  • and, taking it from her bosom, threw it to a distance among the
  • withered leaves. The mystic token alighted on the hither verge of the
  • stream. With a hand's breadth farther flight it would have fallen into
  • the water, and have given the little brook another woe to carry
  • onward, besides the unintelligible tale which it still kept murmuring
  • about. But there lay the embroidered letter, glittering like a lost
  • jewel, which some ill-fated wanderer might pick up, and thenceforth be
  • haunted by strange phantoms of guilt, sinkings of the heart, and
  • unaccountable misfortune.
  • [Illustration: A Gleam of Sunshine]
  • The stigma gone, Hester heaved a long, deep sigh, in which the burden
  • of shame and anguish departed from her spirit. O exquisite relief! She
  • had not known the weight, until she felt the freedom! By another
  • impulse, she took off the formal cap that confined her hair; and down
  • it fell upon her shoulders, dark and rich, with at once a shadow and a
  • light in its abundance, and imparting the charm of softness to her
  • features. There played around her mouth, and beamed out of her eyes, a
  • radiant and tender smile, that seemed gushing from the very heart of
  • womanhood. A crimson flush was glowing on her cheek, that had been
  • long so pale. Her sex, her youth, and the whole richness of her
  • beauty, came back from what men call the irrevocable past, and
  • clustered themselves, with her maiden hope, and a happiness before
  • unknown, within the magic circle of this hour. And, as if the gloom of
  • the earth and sky had been but the effluence of these two mortal
  • hearts, it vanished with their sorrow. All at once, as with a sudden
  • smile of heaven, forth burst the sunshine, pouring a very flood into
  • the obscure forest, gladdening each green leaf, transmuting the yellow
  • fallen ones to gold, and gleaming adown the gray trunks of the solemn
  • trees. The objects that had made a shadow hitherto, embodied the
  • brightness now. The course of the little brook might be traced by its
  • merry gleam afar into the wood's heart of mystery, which had become a
  • mystery of joy.
  • Such was the sympathy of Nature—that wild, heathen Nature of the
  • forest, never subjugated by human law, nor illumined by higher
  • truth—with the bliss of these two spirits! Love, whether newly born,
  • or aroused from a death-like slumber, must always create a sunshine,
  • filling the heart so full of radiance, that it overflows upon the
  • outward world. Had the forest still kept its gloom, it would have been
  • bright in Hester's eyes, and bright in Arthur Dimmesdale's!
  • Hester looked at him with the thrill of another joy.
  • “Thou must know Pearl!” said she. “Our little Pearl! Thou hast seen
  • her,—yes, I know it!—but thou wilt see her now with other eyes. She
  • is a strange child! I hardly comprehend her! But thou wilt love her
  • dearly, as I do, and wilt advise me how to deal with her.”
  • “Dost thou think the child will be glad to know me?” asked the
  • minister, somewhat uneasily. “I have long shrunk from children,
  • because they often show a distrust,—a backwardness to be familiar
  • with me. I have even been afraid of little Pearl!”
  • “Ah, that was sad!” answered the mother. “But she will love thee
  • dearly, and thou her. She is not far off. I will call her! Pearl!
  • Pearl!”
  • “I see the child,” observed the minister. “Yonder she is, standing in
  • a streak of sunshine, a good way off, on the other side of the brook.
  • So thou thinkest the child will love me?”
  • Hester smiled, and again called to Pearl, who was visible, at some
  • distance, as the minister had described her, like a bright-apparelled
  • vision, in a sunbeam, which fell down upon her through an arch of
  • boughs. The ray quivered to and fro, making her figure dim or
  • distinct,—now like a real child, now like a child's spirit,—as the
  • splendor went and came again. She heard her mother's voice, and
  • approached slowly through the forest.
  • Pearl had not found the hour pass wearisomely, while her mother sat
  • talking with the clergyman. The great black forest—stern as it showed
  • itself to those who brought the guilt and troubles of the world into
  • its bosom—became the playmate of the lonely infant, as well as it
  • knew how. Sombre as it was, it put on the kindest of its moods to
  • welcome her. It offered her the partridge-berries, the growth of the
  • preceding autumn, but ripening only in the spring, and now red as
  • drops of blood upon the withered leaves. These Pearl gathered, and was
  • pleased with their wild flavor. The small denizens of the wilderness
  • hardly took pains to move out of her path. A partridge, indeed, with a
  • brood of ten behind her, ran forward threateningly, but soon repented
  • of her fierceness, and clucked to her young ones not to be afraid. A
  • pigeon, alone on a low branch, allowed Pearl to come beneath, and
  • uttered a sound as much of greeting as alarm. A squirrel, from the
  • lofty depths of his domestic tree, chattered either in anger or
  • merriment,—for a squirrel is such a choleric and humorous little
  • personage, that it is hard to distinguish between his moods,—so he
  • chattered at the child, and flung down a nut upon her head. It was a
  • last year's nut, and already gnawed by his sharp tooth. A fox,
  • startled from his sleep by her light footstep on the leaves, looked
  • inquisitively at Pearl, as doubting whether it were better to steal
  • off, or renew his nap on the same spot. A wolf, it is said,—but here
  • the tale has surely lapsed into the improbable,—came up, and smelt of
  • Pearl's robe, and offered his savage head to be patted by her hand.
  • The truth seems to be, however, that the mother-forest, and these wild
  • things which it nourished, all recognized a kindred wildness in the
  • human child.
  • And she was gentler here than in the grassy-margined streets of the
  • settlement, or in her mother's cottage. The flowers appeared to know
  • it; and one and another whispered as she passed, “Adorn thyself with
  • me, thou beautiful child, adorn thyself with me!”—and, to please
  • them, Pearl gathered the violets, and anemones, and columbines, and
  • some twigs of the freshest green, which the old trees held down before
  • her eyes. With these she decorated her hair, and her young waist, and
  • became a nymph-child, or an infant dryad, or whatever else was in
  • closest sympathy with the antique wood. In such guise had Pearl
  • adorned herself, when she heard her mother's voice, and came slowly
  • back.
  • Slowly; for she saw the clergyman.
  • [Illustration]
  • XIX.
  • THE CHILD AT THE BROOK-SIDE.
  • “Thou wilt love her dearly,” repeated Hester Prynne, as she and the
  • minister sat watching little Pearl. “Dost thou not think her
  • beautiful? And see with what natural skill she has made those simple
  • flowers adorn her! Had she gathered pearls, and diamonds, and rubies,
  • in the wood, they could not have become her better. She is a splendid
  • child! But I know whose brow she has!”
  • “Dost thou know, Hester,” said Arthur Dimmesdale, with an unquiet
  • smile, “that this dear child, tripping about always at thy side, hath
  • caused me many an alarm? Methought—O Hester, what a thought is that,
  • and how terrible to dread it!—that my own features were partly
  • repeated in her face, and so strikingly that the world might see them!
  • But she is mostly thine!”
  • “No, no! Not mostly!” answered the mother, with a tender smile. “A
  • little longer, and thou needest not to be afraid to trace whose child
  • she is. But how strangely beautiful she looks, with those
  • wild-flowers in her hair! It is as if one of the fairies, whom we left
  • in our dear old England, had decked her out to meet us.”
  • It was with a feeling which neither of them had ever before
  • experienced, that they sat and watched Pearl's slow advance. In her
  • was visible the tie that united them. She had been offered to the
  • world, these seven years past, as the living hieroglyphic, in which
  • was revealed the secret they so darkly sought to hide,—all written in
  • this symbol,—all plainly manifest,—had there been a prophet or
  • magician skilled to read the character of flame! And Pearl was the
  • oneness of their being. Be the foregone evil what it might, how could
  • they doubt that their earthly lives and future destinies were
  • conjoined, when they beheld at once the material union, and the
  • spiritual idea, in whom they met, and were to dwell immortally
  • together? Thoughts like these—and perhaps other thoughts, which they
  • did not acknowledge or define—threw an awe about the child, as she
  • came onward.
  • “Let her see nothing strange—no passion nor eagerness—in thy way of
  • accosting her,” whispered Hester. “Our Pearl is a fitful and fantastic
  • little elf, sometimes. Especially, she is seldom tolerant of emotion,
  • when she does not fully comprehend the why and wherefore. But the
  • child hath strong affections! She loves me, and will love thee!”
  • “Thou canst not think,” said the minister, glancing aside at Hester
  • Prynne, “how my heart dreads this interview, and yearns for it! But,
  • in truth, as I already told thee, children are not readily won to be
  • familiar with me. They will not climb my knee, nor prattle in my ear,
  • nor answer to my smile; but stand apart, and eye me strangely. Even
  • little babes, when I take them in my arms, weep bitterly. Yet Pearl,
  • twice in her little lifetime, hath been kind to me! The first
  • time,—thou knowest it well! The last was when thou ledst her with
  • thee to the house of yonder stern old Governor.”
  • “And thou didst plead so bravely in her behalf and mine!” answered the
  • mother. “I remember it; and so shall little Pearl. Fear nothing! She
  • may be strange and shy at first, but will soon learn to love thee!”
  • By this time Pearl had reached the margin of the brook, and stood on
  • the farther side, gazing silently at Hester and the clergyman, who
  • still sat together on the mossy tree-trunk, waiting to receive her.
  • Just where she had paused, the brook chanced to form a pool, so smooth
  • and quiet that it reflected a perfect image of her little figure, with
  • all the brilliant picturesqueness of her beauty, in its adornment of
  • flowers and wreathed foliage, but more refined and spiritualized than
  • the reality. This image, so nearly identical with the living Pearl,
  • seemed to communicate somewhat of its own shadowy and intangible
  • quality to the child herself. It was strange, the way in which Pearl
  • stood, looking so steadfastly at them through the dim medium of the
  • forest-gloom; herself, meanwhile, all glorified with a ray of
  • sunshine, that was attracted thitherward as by a certain sympathy. In
  • the brook beneath stood another child,—another and the same,—with
  • likewise its ray of golden light. Hester felt herself, in some
  • indistinct and tantalizing manner, estranged from Pearl; as if the
  • child, in her lonely ramble through the forest, had strayed out of the
  • sphere in which she and her mother dwelt together, and was now vainly
  • seeking to return to it.
  • There was both truth and error in the impression; the child and
  • mother were estranged, but through Hester's fault, not Pearl's. Since
  • the latter rambled from her side, another inmate had been admitted
  • within the circle of the mother's feelings, and so modified the aspect
  • of them all, that Pearl, the returning wanderer, could not find her
  • wonted place, and hardly knew where she was.
  • “I have a strange fancy,” observed the sensitive minister, “that this
  • brook is the boundary between two worlds, and that thou canst never
  • meet thy Pearl again. Or is she an elfish spirit, who, as the legends
  • of our childhood taught us, is forbidden to cross a running stream?
  • Pray hasten her; for this delay has already imparted a tremor to my
  • nerves.”
  • “Come, dearest child!” said Hester, encouragingly, and stretching out
  • both her arms. “How slow thou art! When hast thou been so sluggish
  • before now? Here is a friend of mine, who must be thy friend also.
  • Thou wilt have twice as much love, henceforward, as thy mother alone
  • could give thee! Leap across the brook, and come to us. Thou canst
  • leap like a young deer!”
  • [Illustration: The Child at the Brook-Side]
  • Pearl, without responding in any manner to these honey-sweet
  • expressions, remained on the other side of the brook. Now she fixed
  • her bright, wild eyes on her mother, now on the minister, and now
  • included them both in the same glance; as if to detect and explain to
  • herself the relation which they bore to one another. For some
  • unaccountable reason, as Arthur Dimmesdale felt the child's eyes upon
  • himself, his hand—with that gesture so habitual as to have become
  • involuntary—stole over his heart. At length, assuming a singular air
  • of authority, Pearl stretched out her hand, with the small forefinger
  • extended, and pointing evidently towards her mother's breast. And
  • beneath, in the mirror of the brook, there was the flower-girdled and
  • sunny image of little Pearl, pointing her small forefinger too.
  • “Thou strange child, why dost thou not come to me?” exclaimed Hester.
  • Pearl still pointed with her forefinger; and a frown gathered on her
  • brow; the more impressive from the childish, the almost baby-like
  • aspect of the features that conveyed it. As her mother still kept
  • beckoning to her, and arraying her face in a holiday suit of
  • unaccustomed smiles, the child stamped her foot with a yet more
  • imperious look and gesture. In the brook, again, was the fantastic
  • beauty of the image, with its reflected frown, its pointed finger, and
  • imperious gesture, giving emphasis to the aspect of little Pearl.
  • “Hasten, Pearl; or I shall be angry with thee!” cried Hester Prynne,
  • who, however inured to such behavior on the elf-child's part at other
  • seasons, was naturally anxious for a more seemly deportment now. “Leap
  • across the brook, naughty child, and run hither! Else I must come to
  • thee!”
  • But Pearl, not a whit startled at her mother's threats, any more than
  • mollified by her entreaties, now suddenly burst into a fit of passion,
  • gesticulating violently, and throwing her small figure into the most
  • extravagant contortions. She accompanied this wild outbreak with
  • piercing shrieks, which the woods reverberated on all sides; so that,
  • alone as she was in her childish and unreasonable wrath, it seemed as
  • if a hidden multitude were lending her their sympathy and
  • encouragement. Seen in the brook, once more, was the shadowy wrath of
  • Pearl's image, crowned and girdled with flowers, but stamping its
  • foot, wildly gesticulating, and, in the midst of all, still pointing
  • its small forefinger at Hester's bosom!
  • “I see what ails the child,” whispered Hester to the clergyman, and
  • turning pale in spite of a strong effort to conceal her trouble and
  • annoyance. “Children will not abide any, the slightest, change in the
  • accustomed aspect of things that are daily before their eyes. Pearl
  • misses something which she has always seen me wear!”
  • “I pray you,” answered the minister, “if thou hast any means of
  • pacifying the child, do it forthwith! Save it were the cankered wrath
  • of an old witch, like Mistress Hibbins,” added he, attempting to
  • smile, “I know nothing that I would not sooner encounter than this
  • passion in a child. In Pearl's young beauty, as in the wrinkled witch,
  • it has a preternatural effect. Pacify her, if thou lovest me!”
  • Hester turned again towards Pearl, with a crimson blush upon her
  • cheek, a conscious glance aside at the clergyman, and then a heavy
  • sigh; while, even before she had time to speak, the blush yielded to a
  • deadly pallor.
  • “Pearl,” said she, sadly, “look down at thy feet! There!—before
  • thee!—on the hither side of the brook!”
  • The child turned her eyes to the point indicated; and there lay the
  • scarlet letter, so close upon the margin of the stream, that the gold
  • embroidery was reflected in it.
  • “Bring it hither!” said Hester.
  • “Come thou and take it up!” answered Pearl.
  • “Was ever such a child!” observed Hester, aside to the minister. “O, I
  • have much to tell thee about her! But, in very truth, she is right as
  • regards this hateful token. I must bear its torture yet a little
  • longer,—only a few days longer,—until we shall have left this
  • region, and look back hither as to a land which we have dreamed of.
  • The forest cannot hide it! The mid-ocean shall take it from my hand,
  • and swallow it up forever!”
  • With these words, she advanced to the margin of the brook, took up the
  • scarlet letter, and fastened it again into her bosom. Hopefully, but a
  • moment ago, as Hester had spoken of drowning it in the deep sea, there
  • was a sense of inevitable doom upon her, as she thus received back
  • this deadly symbol from the hand of fate. She had flung it into
  • infinite space!—she had drawn an hour's free breath!—and here again
  • was the scarlet misery, glittering on the old spot! So it ever is,
  • whether thus typified or no, that an evil deed invests itself with the
  • character of doom. Hester next gathered up the heavy tresses of her
  • hair, and confined them beneath her cap. As if there were a withering
  • spell in the sad letter, her beauty, the warmth and richness of her
  • womanhood, departed, like fading sunshine; and a gray shadow seemed to
  • fall across her.
  • When the dreary change was wrought, she extended her hand to Pearl.
  • “Dost thou know thy mother now, child?” asked she, reproachfully, but
  • with a subdued tone. “Wilt thou come across the brook, and own thy
  • mother, now that she has her shame upon her,—now that she is sad?”
  • “Yes; now I will!” answered the child, bounding across the brook, and
  • clasping Hester in her arms. “Now thou art my mother indeed! And I am
  • thy little Pearl!”
  • In a mood of tenderness that was not usual with her, she drew down her
  • mother's head, and kissed her brow and both her cheeks. But then—by a
  • kind of necessity that always impelled this child to alloy whatever
  • comfort she might chance to give with a throb of anguish—Pearl put up
  • her mouth, and kissed the scarlet letter too!
  • “That was not kind!” said Hester. “When thou hast shown me a little
  • love, thou mockest me!”
  • “Why doth the minister sit yonder?” asked Pearl.
  • “He waits to welcome thee,” replied her mother. “Come thou, and
  • entreat his blessing! He loves thee, my little Pearl, and loves thy
  • mother too. Wilt thou not love him? Come! he longs to greet thee!”
  • “Doth he love us?” said Pearl, looking up, with acute intelligence,
  • into her mother's face. “Will he go back with us, hand in hand, we
  • three together, into the town?”
  • “Not now, dear child,” answered Hester. “But in days to come he will
  • walk hand in hand with us. We will have a home and fireside of our
  • own; and thou shalt sit upon his knee; and he will teach thee many
  • things, and love thee dearly. Thou wilt love him; wilt thou not?”
  • “And will he always keep his hand over his heart?” inquired Pearl.
  • “Foolish child, what a question is that!” exclaimed her mother. “Come
  • and ask his blessing!”
  • But, whether influenced by the jealousy that seems instinctive with
  • every petted child towards a dangerous rival, or from whatever caprice
  • of her freakish nature, Pearl would show no favor to the clergyman. It
  • was only by an exertion of force that her mother brought her up to
  • him, hanging back, and manifesting her reluctance by odd grimaces; of
  • which, ever since her babyhood, she had possessed a singular variety,
  • and could transform her mobile physiognomy into a series of different
  • aspects, with a new mischief in them, each and all. The
  • minister—painfully embarrassed, but hoping that a kiss might prove a
  • talisman to admit him into the child's kindlier regards—bent forward,
  • and impressed one on her brow. Hereupon, Pearl broke away from her
  • mother, and, running to the brook, stooped over it, and bathed her
  • forehead, until the unwelcome kiss was quite washed off, and diffused
  • through a long lapse of the gliding water. She then remained apart,
  • silently watching Hester and the clergyman; while they talked
  • together, and made such arrangements as were suggested by their new
  • position, and the purposes soon to be fulfilled.
  • And now this fateful interview had come to a close. The dell was to be
  • left a solitude among its dark, old trees, which, with their
  • multitudinous tongues, would whisper long of what had passed there,
  • and no mortal be the wiser. And the melancholy brook would add this
  • other tale to the mystery with which its little heart was already
  • overburdened, and whereof it still kept up a murmuring babble, with
  • not a whit more cheerfulness of tone than for ages heretofore.
  • [Illustration]
  • [Illustration]
  • XX.
  • THE MINISTER IN A MAZE.
  • As the minister departed, in advance of Hester Prynne and little
  • Pearl, he threw a backward glance; half expecting that he should
  • discover only some faintly traced features or outline of the mother
  • and the child, slowly fading into the twilight of the woods. So great
  • a vicissitude in his life could not at once be received as real. But
  • there was Hester, clad in her gray robe, still standing beside the
  • tree-trunk, which some blast had overthrown a long antiquity ago, and
  • which time had ever since been covering with moss, so that these two
  • fated ones, with earth's heaviest burden on them, might there sit down
  • together, and find a single hour's rest and solace. And there was
  • Pearl, too, lightly dancing from the margin of the brook,—now that
  • the intrusive third person was gone,—and taking her old place by her
  • mother's side. So the minister had not fallen asleep and dreamed!
  • In order to free his mind from this indistinctness and duplicity of
  • impression, which vexed it with a strange disquietude, he recalled and
  • more thoroughly defined the plans which Hester and himself had
  • sketched for their departure. It had been determined between them,
  • that the Old World, with its crowds and cities, offered them a more
  • eligible shelter and concealment than the wilds of New England, or all
  • America, with its alternatives of an Indian wigwam, or the few
  • settlements of Europeans, scattered thinly along the seaboard. Not to
  • speak of the clergyman's health, so inadequate to sustain the
  • hardships of a forest life, his native gifts, his culture, and his
  • entire development, would secure him a home only in the midst of
  • civilization and refinement; the higher the state, the more delicately
  • adapted to it the man. In furtherance of this choice, it so happened
  • that a ship lay in the harbor; one of those questionable cruisers,
  • frequent at that day, which, without being absolutely outlaws of the
  • deep, yet roamed over its surface with a remarkable irresponsibility
  • of character. This vessel had recently arrived from the Spanish Main,
  • and, within three days' time, would sail for Bristol. Hester
  • Prynne—whose vocation, as a self-enlisted Sister of Charity, had
  • brought her acquainted with the captain and crew—could take upon
  • herself to secure the passage of two individuals and a child, with all
  • the secrecy which circumstances rendered more than desirable.
  • The minister had inquired of Hester, with no little interest, the
  • precise time at which the vessel might be expected to depart. It would
  • probably be on the fourth day from the present. “That is most
  • fortunate!” he had then said to himself. Now, why the Reverend Mr.
  • Dimmesdale considered it so very fortunate, we hesitate to reveal.
  • Nevertheless,—to hold nothing back from the reader,—it was because,
  • on the third day from the present, he was to preach the Election
  • Sermon; and, as such an occasion formed an honorable epoch in the life
  • of a New England clergyman, he could not have chanced upon a more
  • suitable mode and time of terminating his professional career. “At
  • least, they shall say of me,” thought this exemplary man, “that I
  • leave no public duty unperformed, nor ill performed!” Sad, indeed,
  • that an introspection so profound and acute as this poor minister's
  • should be so miserably deceived! We have had, and may still have,
  • worse things to tell of him; but none, we apprehend, so pitiably weak;
  • no evidence, at once so slight and irrefragable, of a subtle disease,
  • that had long since begun to eat into the real substance of his
  • character. No man, for any considerable period, can wear one face to
  • himself, and another to the multitude, without finally getting
  • bewildered as to which may be the true.
  • The excitement of Mr. Dimmesdale's feelings, as he returned from his
  • interview with Hester, lent him unaccustomed physical energy, and
  • hurried him townward at a rapid pace. The pathway among the woods
  • seemed wilder, more uncouth with its rude natural obstacles, and less
  • trodden by the foot of man, than he remembered it on his outward
  • journey. But he leaped across the plashy places, thrust himself
  • through the clinging underbrush, climbed the ascent, plunged into the
  • hollow, and overcame, in short, all the difficulties of the track,
  • with an unweariable activity that astonished him. He could not but
  • recall how feebly, and with what frequent pauses for breath, he had
  • toiled over the same ground, only two days before. As he drew near the
  • town, he took an impression of change from the series of familiar
  • objects that presented themselves. It seemed not yesterday, not one,
  • nor two, but many days, or even years ago, since he had quitted them.
  • There, indeed, was each former trace of the street, as he remembered
  • it, and all the peculiarities of the houses, with the due multitude
  • of gable-peaks, and a weathercock at every point where his memory
  • suggested one. Not the less, however, came this importunately
  • obtrusive sense of change. The same was true as regarded the
  • acquaintances whom he met, and all the well-known shapes of human
  • life, about the little town. They looked neither older nor younger
  • now; the beards of the aged were no whiter, nor could the creeping
  • babe of yesterday walk on his feet to-day; it was impossible to
  • describe in what respect they differed from the individuals on whom he
  • had so recently bestowed a parting glance; and yet the minister's
  • deepest sense seemed to inform him of their mutability. A similar
  • impression struck him most remarkably, as he passed under the walls of
  • his own church. The edifice had so very strange, and yet so familiar,
  • an aspect, that Mr. Dimmesdale's mind vibrated between two ideas;
  • either that he had seen it only in a dream hitherto, or that he was
  • merely dreaming about it now.
  • This phenomenon, in the various shapes which it assumed, indicated no
  • external change, but so sudden and important a change in the spectator
  • of the familiar scene, that the intervening space of a single day had
  • operated on his consciousness like the lapse of years. The minister's
  • own will, and Hester's will, and the fate that grew between them, had
  • wrought this transformation. It was the same town as heretofore; but
  • the same minister returned not from the forest. He might have said to
  • the friends who greeted him,—“I am not the man for whom you take me!
  • I left him yonder in the forest, withdrawn into a secret dell, by a
  • mossy tree-trunk, and near a melancholy brook! Go, seek your minister,
  • and see if his emaciated figure, his thin cheek, his white, heavy,
  • pain-wrinkled brow, be not flung down there, like a cast-off
  • garment!” His friends, no doubt, would still have insisted with
  • him,—“Thou art thyself the man!”—but the error would have been their
  • own, not his.
  • Before Mr. Dimmesdale reached home, his inner man gave him other
  • evidences of a revolution in the sphere of thought and feeling. In
  • truth, nothing short of a total change of dynasty and moral code, in
  • that interior kingdom, was adequate to account for the impulses now
  • communicated to the unfortunate and startled minister. At every step
  • he was incited to do some strange, wild, wicked thing or other, with a
  • sense that it would be at once involuntary and intentional; in spite
  • of himself, yet growing out of a profounder self than that which
  • opposed the impulse. For instance, he met one of his own deacons. The
  • good old man addressed him with the paternal affection and patriarchal
  • privilege, which his venerable age, his upright and holy character,
  • and his station in the Church, entitled him to use; and, conjoined
  • with this, the deep, almost worshipping respect, which the minister's
  • professional and private claims alike demanded. Never was there a more
  • beautiful example of how the majesty of age and wisdom may comport
  • with the obeisance and respect enjoined upon it, as from a lower
  • social rank, and inferior order of endowment, towards a higher. Now,
  • during a conversation of some two or three moments between the
  • Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale and this excellent and hoary-bearded deacon,
  • it was only by the most careful self-control that the former could
  • refrain from uttering certain blasphemous suggestions that rose into
  • his mind, respecting the communion supper. He absolutely trembled and
  • turned pale as ashes, lest his tongue should wag itself, in utterance
  • of these horrible matters, and plead his own consent for so doing,
  • without his having fairly given it. And, even with this terror in his
  • heart, he could hardly avoid laughing, to imagine how the sanctified
  • old patriarchal deacon would have been petrified by his minister's
  • impiety!
  • Again, another incident of the same nature. Hurrying along the street,
  • the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale encountered the eldest female member of
  • his church; a most pious and exemplary old dame; poor, widowed,
  • lonely, and with a heart as full of reminiscences about her dead
  • husband and children, and her dead friends of long ago, as a
  • burial-ground is full of storied gravestones. Yet all this, which
  • would else have been such heavy sorrow, was made almost a solemn joy
  • to her devout old soul, by religious consolations and the truths of
  • Scripture, wherewith she had fed herself continually for more than
  • thirty years. And, since Mr. Dimmesdale had taken her in charge, the
  • good grandam's chief earthly comfort—which, unless it had been
  • likewise a heavenly comfort, could have been none at all—was to meet
  • her pastor, whether casually, or of set purpose, and be refreshed with
  • a word of warm, fragrant, heaven-breathing Gospel truth, from his
  • beloved lips, into her dulled, but rapturously attentive ear. But, on
  • this occasion, up to the moment of putting his lips to the old woman's
  • ear, Mr. Dimmesdale, as the great enemy of souls would have it, could
  • recall no text of Scripture, nor aught else, except a brief, pithy,
  • and, as it then appeared to him, unanswerable argument against the
  • immortality of the human soul. The instilment thereof into her mind
  • would probably have caused this aged sister to drop down dead, at
  • once, as by the effect of an intensely poisonous infusion. What he
  • really did whisper, the minister could never afterwards recollect.
  • There was, perhaps, a fortunate disorder in his utterance, which
  • failed to impart any distinct idea to the good widow's comprehension,
  • or which Providence interpreted after a method of its own. Assuredly,
  • as the minister looked back, he beheld an expression of divine
  • gratitude and ecstasy that seemed like the shine of the celestial city
  • on her face, so wrinkled and ashy pale.
  • Again, a third instance. After parting from the old church-member, he
  • met the youngest sister of them all. It was a maiden newly won—and
  • won by the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale's own sermon, on the Sabbath after
  • his vigil—to barter the transitory pleasures of the world for the
  • heavenly hope, that was to assume brighter substance as life grew dark
  • around her, and which would gild the utter gloom with final glory. She
  • was fair and pure as a lily that had bloomed in Paradise. The minister
  • knew well that he was himself enshrined within the stainless sanctity
  • of her heart, which hung its snowy curtains about his image, imparting
  • to religion the warmth of love, and to love a religious purity. Satan,
  • that afternoon, had surely led the poor young girl away from her
  • mother's side, and thrown her into the pathway of this sorely tempted,
  • or—shall we not rather say?—this lost and desperate man. As she drew
  • nigh, the arch-fiend whispered him to condense into small compass and
  • drop into her tender bosom a germ of evil that would be sure to
  • blossom darkly soon, and bear black fruit betimes. Such was his sense
  • of power over this virgin soul, trusting him as she did, that the
  • minister felt potent to blight all the field of innocence with but one
  • wicked look, and develop all its opposite with but a word. So—with a
  • mightier struggle than he had yet sustained—he held his Geneva cloak
  • before his face, and hurried onward, making no sign of recognition,
  • and leaving the young sister to digest his rudeness as she might. She
  • ransacked her conscience,—which was full of harmless little matters,
  • like her pocket or her work-bag,—and took herself to task, poor
  • thing! for a thousand imaginary faults; and went about her household
  • duties with swollen eyelids the next morning.
  • Before the minister had time to celebrate his victory over this last
  • temptation, he was conscious of another impulse, more ludicrous, and
  • almost as horrible. It was,—we blush to tell it,—it was to stop
  • short in the road, and teach some very wicked words to a knot of
  • little Puritan children who were playing there, and had but just begun
  • to talk. Denying himself this freak, as unworthy of his cloth, he met
  • a drunken seaman, one of the ship's crew from the Spanish Main. And,
  • here, since he had so valiantly forborne all other wickedness, poor
  • Mr. Dimmesdale longed, at least, to shake hands with the tarry
  • blackguard, and recreate himself with a few improper jests, such as
  • dissolute sailors so abound with, and a volley of good, round, solid,
  • satisfactory, and heaven-defying oaths! It was not so much a better
  • principle as partly his natural good taste, and still more his
  • buckramed habit of clerical decorum, that carried him safely through
  • the latter crisis.
  • “What is it that haunts and tempts me thus?” cried the minister to
  • himself, at length, pausing in the street, and striking his hand
  • against his forehead. “Am I mad? or am I given over utterly to the
  • fiend? Did I make a contract with him in the forest, and sign it with
  • my blood? And does he now summon me to its fulfilment, by suggesting
  • the performance of every wickedness which his most foul imagination
  • can conceive?”
  • At the moment when the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale thus communed with
  • himself, and struck his forehead with his hand, old Mistress Hibbins,
  • the reputed witch-lady, is said to have been passing by. She made a
  • very grand appearance; having on a high head-dress, a rich gown of
  • velvet, and a ruff done up with the famous yellow starch, of which Ann
  • Turner, her especial friend, had taught her the secret, before this
  • last good lady had been hanged for Sir Thomas Overbury's murder.
  • Whether the witch had read the minister's thoughts, or no, she came to
  • a full stop, looked shrewdly into his face, smiled craftily,
  • and—though little given to converse with clergymen—began a
  • conversation.
  • “So, reverend Sir, you have made a visit into the forest,” observed
  • the witch-lady, nodding her high head-dress at him. “The next time, I
  • pray you to allow me only a fair warning, and I shall be proud to bear
  • you company. Without taking overmuch upon myself, my good word will go
  • far towards gaining any strange gentleman a fair reception from yonder
  • potentate you wot of!”
  • “I profess, madam,” answered the clergyman, with a grave obeisance,
  • such as the lady's rank demanded, and his own good-breeding made
  • imperative,—“I profess, on my conscience and character, that I am
  • utterly bewildered as touching the purport of your words! I went not
  • into the forest to seek a potentate; neither do I, at any future time,
  • design a visit thither, with a view to gaining the favor of such a
  • personage. My one sufficient object was to greet that pious friend of
  • mine, the Apostle Eliot, and rejoice with him over the many precious
  • souls he hath won from heathendom!”
  • “Ha, ha, ha!” cackled the old witch-lady, still nodding her high
  • head-dress at the minister. “Well, well, we must needs talk thus in
  • the daytime! You carry it off like an old hand! But at midnight, and
  • in the forest, we shall have other talk together!”
  • She passed on with her aged stateliness, but often turning back her
  • head and smiling at him, like one willing to recognize a secret
  • intimacy of connection.
  • “Have I then sold myself,” thought the minister, “to the fiend whom,
  • if men say true, this yellow-starched and velveted old hag has chosen
  • for her prince and master!”
  • The wretched minister! He had made a bargain very like it! Tempted by
  • a dream of happiness, he had yielded himself, with deliberate choice,
  • as he had never done before, to what he knew was deadly sin. And the
  • infectious poison of that sin had been thus rapidly diffused
  • throughout his moral system. It had stupefied all blessed impulses,
  • and awakened into vivid life the whole brotherhood of bad ones. Scorn,
  • bitterness, unprovoked malignity, gratuitous desire of ill, ridicule
  • of whatever was good and holy, all awoke, to tempt, even while they
  • frightened him. And his encounter with old Mistress Hibbins, if it
  • were a real incident, did but show his sympathy and fellowship with
  • wicked mortals, and the world of perverted spirits.
  • He had, by this time, reached his dwelling, on the edge of the
  • burial-ground, and, hastening up the stairs, took refuge in his study.
  • The minister was glad to have reached this shelter, without first
  • betraying himself to the world by any of those strange and wicked
  • eccentricities to which he had been continually impelled while passing
  • through the streets. He entered the accustomed room, and looked around
  • him on its books, its windows, its fireplace, and the tapestried
  • comfort of the walls, with the same perception of strangeness that had
  • haunted him throughout his walk from the forest-dell into the town,
  • and thitherward. Here he had studied and written; here, gone through
  • fast and vigil, and come forth half alive; here, striven to pray;
  • here, borne a hundred thousand agonies! There was the Bible, in its
  • rich old Hebrew, with Moses and the Prophets speaking to him, and
  • God's voice through all! There, on the table, with the inky pen beside
  • it, was an unfinished sermon, with a sentence broken in the midst,
  • where his thoughts had ceased to gush out upon the page, two days
  • before. He knew that it was himself, the thin and white-cheeked
  • minister, who had done and suffered these things, and written thus far
  • into the Election Sermon! But he seemed to stand apart, and eye this
  • former self with scornful, pitying, but half-envious curiosity. That
  • self was gone. Another man had returned out of the forest; a wiser
  • one; with a knowledge of hidden mysteries which the simplicity of the
  • former never could have reached. A bitter kind of knowledge that!
  • While occupied with these reflections, a knock came at the door of the
  • study, and the minister said, “Come in!”—not wholly devoid of an idea
  • that he might behold an evil spirit. And so he did! It was old Roger
  • Chillingworth that entered. The minister stood, white and speechless,
  • with one hand on the Hebrew Scriptures, and the other spread upon his
  • breast.
  • “Welcome home, reverend Sir,” said the physician. “And how found you
  • that godly man, the Apostle Eliot? But methinks, dear Sir, you look
  • pale; as if the travel through the wilderness had been too sore for
  • you. Will not my aid be requisite to put you in heart and strength to
  • preach your Election Sermon?”
  • “Nay, I think not so,” rejoined the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale. “My
  • journey, and the sight of the holy Apostle yonder, and the free air
  • which I have breathed, have done me good, after so long confinement in
  • my study. I think to need no more of your drugs, my kind physician,
  • good though they be, and administered by a friendly hand.”
  • All this time, Roger Chillingworth was looking at the minister with
  • the grave and intent regard of a physician towards his patient. But,
  • in spite of this outward show, the latter was almost convinced of the
  • old man's knowledge, or, at least, his confident suspicion, with
  • respect to his own interview with Hester Prynne. The physician knew
  • then, that, in the minister's regard, he was no longer a trusted
  • friend, but his bitterest enemy. So much being known, it would appear
  • natural that a part of it should be expressed. It is singular,
  • however, how long a time often passes before words embody things; and
  • with what security two persons, who choose to avoid a certain subject,
  • may approach its very verge, and retire without disturbing it. Thus,
  • the minister felt no apprehension that Roger Chillingworth would
  • touch, in express words, upon the real position which they sustained
  • towards one another. Yet did the physician, in his dark way, creep
  • frightfully near the secret.
  • “Were it not better,” said he, “that you use my poor skill to-night?
  • Verily, dear Sir, we must take pains to make you strong and vigorous
  • for this occasion of the Election discourse. The people look for great
  • things from you; apprehending that another year may come about, and
  • find their pastor gone.”
  • “Yea, to another world,” replied the minister, with pious resignation.
  • “Heaven grant it be a better one; for, in good sooth, I hardly think
  • to tarry with my flock through the flitting seasons of another year!
  • But, touching your medicine, kind Sir, in my present frame of body, I
  • need it not.”
  • “I joy to hear it,” answered the physician. “It may be that my
  • remedies, so long administered in vain, begin now to take due effect.
  • Happy man were I, and well deserving of New England's gratitude, could
  • I achieve this cure!”
  • “I thank you from my heart, most watchful friend,” said the Reverend
  • Mr. Dimmesdale, with a solemn smile. “I thank you, and can but requite
  • your good deeds with my prayers.”
  • “A good man's prayers are golden recompense!” rejoined old Roger
  • Chillingworth, as he took his leave. “Yea, they are the current gold
  • coin of the New Jerusalem, with the King's own mint-mark on them!”
  • Left alone, the minister summoned a servant of the house, and
  • requested food, which, being set before him, he ate with ravenous
  • appetite. Then, flinging the already written pages of the Election
  • Sermon into the fire, he forthwith began another, which he wrote with
  • such an impulsive flow of thought and emotion, that he fancied himself
  • inspired; and only wondered that Heaven should see fit to transmit the
  • grand and solemn music of its oracles through so foul an organ-pipe as
  • he. However, leaving that mystery to solve itself, or go unsolved
  • forever, he drove his task onward, with earnest haste and ecstasy.
  • Thus the night fled away, as if it were a winged steed, and he
  • careering on it; morning came, and peeped, blushing, through the
  • curtains; and at last sunrise threw a golden beam into the study and
  • laid it right across the minister's bedazzled eyes. There he was, with
  • the pen still between his fingers, and a vast, immeasurable tract of
  • written space behind him!
  • [Illustration]
  • XXI.
  • THE NEW ENGLAND HOLIDAY.
  • Betimes in the morning of the day on which the new Governor was to
  • receive his office at the hands of the people, Hester Prynne and
  • little Pearl came into the market-place. It was already thronged with
  • the craftsmen and other plebeian inhabitants of the town, in
  • considerable numbers; among whom, likewise, were many rough figures,
  • whose attire of deer-skins marked them as belonging to some of the
  • forest settlements, which surrounded the little metropolis of the
  • colony.
  • On this public holiday, as on all other occasions, for seven years
  • past, Hester was clad in a garment of coarse gray cloth. Not more by
  • its hue than by some indescribable peculiarity in its fashion, it had
  • the effect of making her fade personally out of sight and outline;
  • while, again, the scarlet letter brought her back from this twilight
  • indistinctness, and revealed her under the moral aspect of its own
  • illumination. Her face, so long familiar to the towns-people, showed
  • the marble quietude which they were accustomed to behold there. It was
  • like a mask; or, rather, like the frozen calmness of a dead woman's
  • features; owing this dreary resemblance to the fact that Hester was
  • actually dead, in respect to any claim of sympathy, and had departed
  • out of the world with which she still seemed to mingle.
  • It might be, on this one day, that there was an expression unseen
  • before, nor, indeed, vivid enough to be detected now; unless some
  • preternaturally gifted observer should have first read the heart, and
  • have afterwards sought a corresponding development in the countenance
  • and mien. Such a spiritual seer might have conceived, that, after
  • sustaining the gaze of the multitude through seven miserable years as
  • a necessity, a penance, and something which it was a stern religion to
  • endure, she now, for one last time more, encountered it freely and
  • voluntarily, in order to convert what had so long been agony into a
  • kind of triumph. “Look your last on the scarlet letter and its
  • wearer!”—the people's victim and life-long bond-slave, as they
  • fancied her, might say to them. “Yet a little while, and she will be
  • beyond your reach! A few hours longer, and the deep, mysterious ocean
  • will quench and hide forever the symbol which ye have caused to burn
  • upon her bosom!” Nor were it an inconsistency too improbable to be
  • assigned to human nature, should we suppose a feeling of regret in
  • Hester's mind, at the moment when she was about to win her freedom
  • from the pain which had been thus deeply incorporated with her being.
  • Might there not be an irresistible desire to quaff a last, long,
  • breathless draught of the cup of wormwood and aloes, with which nearly
  • all her years of womanhood had been perpetually flavored? The wine of
  • life, henceforth to be presented to her lips, must be indeed rich,
  • delicious, and exhilarating, in its chased and golden beaker; or else
  • leave an inevitable and weary languor, after the lees of bitterness
  • wherewith she had been drugged, as with a cordial of intensest
  • potency.
  • Pearl was decked out with airy gayety. It would have been impossible
  • to guess that this bright and sunny apparition owed its existence to
  • the shape of gloomy gray; or that a fancy, at once so gorgeous and so
  • delicate as must have been requisite to contrive the child's apparel,
  • was the same that had achieved a task perhaps more difficult, in
  • imparting so distinct a peculiarity to Hester's simple robe. The
  • dress, so proper was it to little Pearl, seemed an effluence, or
  • inevitable development and outward manifestation of her character, no
  • more to be separated from her than the many-hued brilliancy from a
  • butterfly's wing, or the painted glory from the leaf of a bright
  • flower. As with these, so with the child; her garb was all of one idea
  • with her nature. On this eventful day, moreover, there was a certain
  • singular inquietude and excitement in her mood, resembling nothing so
  • much as the shimmer of a diamond, that sparkles and flashes with the
  • varied throbbings of the breast on which it is displayed. Children
  • have always a sympathy in the agitations of those connected with them;
  • always, especially, a sense of any trouble or impending revolution, of
  • whatever kind, in domestic circumstances; and therefore Pearl, who was
  • the gem on her mother's unquiet bosom, betrayed, by the very dance of
  • her spirits, the emotions which none could detect in the marble
  • passiveness of Hester's brow.
  • This effervescence made her flit with a bird-like movement, rather
  • than walk by her mother's side. She broke continually into shouts of a
  • wild, inarticulate, and sometimes piercing music. When they reached
  • the market-place, she became still more restless, on perceiving the
  • stir and bustle that enlivened the spot; for it was usually more like
  • the broad and lonesome green before a village meeting-house, than the
  • centre of a town's business.
  • “Why, what is this, mother?” cried she. “Wherefore have all the people
  • left their work to-day? Is it a play-day for the whole world? See,
  • there is the blacksmith! He has washed his sooty face, and put on his
  • Sabbath-day clothes, and looks as if he would gladly be merry, if any
  • kind body would only teach him how! And there is Master Brackett, the
  • old jailer, nodding and smiling at me. Why does he do so, mother?”
  • “He remembers thee a little babe, my child,” answered Hester.
  • “He should not nod and smile at me, for all that,—the black, grim,
  • ugly-eyed old man!” said Pearl. “He may nod at thee, if he will; for
  • thou art clad in gray, and wearest the scarlet letter. But see,
  • mother, how many faces of strange people, and Indians among them, and
  • sailors! What have they all come to do, here in the market-place?”
  • “They wait to see the procession pass,” said Hester. “For the Governor
  • and the magistrates are to go by, and the ministers, and all the great
  • people and good people, with the music and the soldiers marching
  • before them.”
  • “And will the minister be there?” asked Pearl. “And will he hold out
  • both his hands to me, as when thou ledst me to him from the
  • brook-side?”
  • “He will be there, child,” answered her mother. “But he will not greet
  • thee to-day; nor must thou greet him.”
  • “What a strange, sad man is he!” said the child, as if speaking partly
  • to herself. “In the dark night-time he calls us to him, and holds thy
  • hand and mine, as when we stood with him on the scaffold yonder. And
  • in the deep forest, where only the old trees can hear, and the strip
  • of sky see it, he talks with thee, sitting on a heap of moss! And he
  • kisses my forehead, too, so that the little brook would hardly wash it
  • off! But here, in the sunny day, and among all the people, he knows us
  • not; nor must we know him! A strange, sad man is he, with his hand
  • always over his heart!”
  • “Be quiet, Pearl! Thou understandest not these things,” said her
  • mother. “Think not now of the minister, but look about thee, and see
  • how cheery is everybody's face to-day. The children have come from
  • their schools, and the grown people from their workshops and their
  • fields, on purpose to be happy. For, to-day, a new man is beginning to
  • rule over them; and so—as has been the custom of mankind ever since a
  • nation was first gathered—they make merry and rejoice; as if a good
  • and golden year were at length to pass over the poor old world!”
  • It was as Hester said, in regard to the unwonted jollity that
  • brightened the faces of the people. Into this festal season of the
  • year—as it already was, and continued to be during the greater part
  • of two centuries—the Puritans compressed whatever mirth and public
  • joy they deemed allowable to human infirmity; thereby so far
  • dispelling the customary cloud, that, for the space of a single
  • holiday, they appeared scarcely more grave than most other communities
  • at a period of general affliction.
  • But we perhaps exaggerate the gray or sable tinge, which undoubtedly
  • characterized the mood and manners of the age. The persons now in the
  • market-place of Boston had not been born to an inheritance of
  • Puritanic gloom. They were native Englishmen, whose fathers had lived
  • in the sunny richness of the Elizabethan epoch; a time when the life
  • of England, viewed as one great mass, would appear to have been as
  • stately, magnificent, and joyous, as the world has ever witnessed. Had
  • they followed their hereditary taste, the New England settlers would
  • have illustrated all events of public importance by bonfires,
  • banquets, pageantries, and processions. Nor would it have been
  • impracticable, in the observance of majestic ceremonies, to combine
  • mirthful recreation with solemnity, and give, as it were, a grotesque
  • and brilliant embroidery to the great robe of state, which a nation,
  • at such festivals, puts on. There was some shadow of an attempt of
  • this kind in the mode of celebrating the day on which the political
  • year of the colony commenced. The dim reflection of a remembered
  • splendor, a colorless and manifold diluted repetition of what they had
  • beheld in proud old London,—we will not say at a royal coronation,
  • but at a Lord Mayor's show,—might be traced in the customs which our
  • forefathers instituted, with reference to the annual installation of
  • magistrates. The fathers and founders of the commonwealth—the
  • statesman, the priest, and the soldier—deemed it a duty then to
  • assume the outward state and majesty, which, in accordance with
  • antique style, was looked upon as the proper garb of public or social
  • eminence. All came forth, to move in procession before the people's
  • eye, and thus impart a needed dignity to the simple framework of a
  • government so newly constructed.
  • Then, too, the people were countenanced, if not encouraged, in
  • relaxing the severe and close application to their various modes of
  • rugged industry, which, at all other times, seemed of the same piece
  • and material with their religion. Here, it is true, were none of the
  • applicances which popular merriment would so readily have found in the
  • England of Elizabeth's time, or that of James;—no rude shows of a
  • theatrical kind; no minstrel, with his harp and legendary ballad, nor
  • gleeman, with an ape dancing to his music; no juggler, with his tricks
  • of mimic witchcraft; no Merry Andrew, to stir up the multitude with
  • jests, perhaps hundreds of years old, but still effective, by their
  • appeals to the very broadest sources of mirthful sympathy. All such
  • professors of the several branches of jocularity would have been
  • sternly repressed, not only by the rigid discipline of law, but by the
  • general sentiment which gives law its vitality. Not the less, however,
  • the great, honest face of the people smiled, grimly, perhaps, but
  • widely too. Nor were sports wanting, such as the colonists had
  • witnessed, and shared in, long ago, at the country fairs and on the
  • village-greens of England; and which it was thought well to keep alive
  • on this new soil, for the sake of the courage and manliness that were
  • essential in them. Wrestling-matches, in the different fashions of
  • Cornwall and Devonshire, were seen here and there about the
  • market-place; in one corner, there was a friendly bout at
  • quarterstaff; and—what attracted most interest of all—on the
  • platform of the pillory, already so noted in our pages, two masters of
  • defence were commencing an exhibition with the buckler and broadsword.
  • But, much to the disappointment of the crowd, this latter business was
  • broken off by the interposition of the town beadle, who had no idea of
  • permitting the majesty of the law to be violated by such an abuse of
  • one of its consecrated places.
  • It may not be too much to affirm, on the whole, (the people being then
  • in the first stages of joyless deportment, and the offspring of sires
  • who had known how to be merry, in their day,) that they would compare
  • favorably, in point of holiday keeping, with their descendants, even
  • at so long an interval as ourselves. Their immediate posterity, the
  • generation next to the early emigrants, wore the blackest shade of
  • Puritanism, and so darkened the national visage with it, that all the
  • subsequent years have not sufficed to clear it up. We have yet to
  • learn again the forgotten art of gayety.
  • The picture of human life in the market-place, though its general tint
  • was the sad gray, brown, or black of the English emigrants, was yet
  • enlivened by some diversity of hue. A party of Indians—in their
  • savage finery of curiously embroidered deer-skin robes, wampum-belts,
  • red and yellow ochre, and feathers, and armed with the bow and arrow
  • and stone-headed spear—stood apart, with countenances of inflexible
  • gravity, beyond what even the Puritan aspect could attain. Nor, wild
  • as were these painted barbarians, were they the wildest feature of the
  • scene. This distinction could more justly be claimed by some
  • mariners,—a part of the crew of the vessel from the Spanish
  • Main,—who had come ashore to see the humors of Election Day. They
  • were rough-looking desperadoes, with sun-blackened faces, and an
  • immensity of beard; their wide, short trousers were confined about the
  • waist by belts, often clasped with a rough plate of gold, and
  • sustaining always a long knife, and, in some instances, a sword. From
  • beneath their broad-brimmed hats of palm-leaf gleamed eyes which, even
  • in good-nature and merriment, had a kind of animal ferocity. They
  • transgressed, without fear or scruple, the rules of behavior that were
  • binding on all others; smoking tobacco under the beadle's very nose,
  • although each whiff would have cost a townsman a shilling; and
  • quaffing, at their pleasure, draughts of wine or aqua-vitæ from
  • pocket-flasks, which they freely tendered to the gaping crowd around
  • them. It remarkably characterized the incomplete morality of the age,
  • rigid as we call it, that a license was allowed the seafaring class,
  • not merely for their freaks on shore, but for far more desperate deeds
  • on their proper element. The sailor of that day would go near to be
  • arraigned as a pirate in our own. There could be little doubt, for
  • instance, that this very ship's crew, though no unfavorable specimens
  • of the nautical brotherhood, had been guilty, as we should phrase it,
  • of depredations on the Spanish commerce, such as would have perilled
  • all their necks in a modern court of justice.
  • But the sea, in those old times, heaved, swelled, and foamed, very
  • much at its own will, or subject only to the tempestuous wind, with
  • hardly any attempts at regulation by human law. The buccaneer on the
  • wave might relinquish his calling, and become at once, if he chose, a
  • man of probity and piety on land; nor, even in the full career of his
  • reckless life, was he regarded as a personage with whom it was
  • disreputable to traffic, or casually associate. Thus, the Puritan
  • elders, in their black cloaks, starched bands, and steeple-crowned
  • hats, smiled not unbenignantly at the clamor and rude deportment of
  • these jolly seafaring men; and it excited neither surprise nor
  • animadversion, when so reputable a citizen as old Roger Chillingworth,
  • the physician, was seen to enter the market-place, in close and
  • familiar talk with the commander of the questionable vessel.
  • The latter was by far the most showy and gallant figure, so far as
  • apparel went, anywhere to be seen among the multitude. He wore a
  • profusion of ribbons on his garment, and gold-lace on his hat, which
  • was also encircled by a gold chain, and surmounted with a feather.
  • There was a sword at his side, and a sword-cut on his forehead, which,
  • by the arrangement of his hair, he seemed anxious rather to display
  • than hide. A landsman could hardly have worn this garb and shown this
  • face, and worn and shown them both with such a galliard air, without
  • undergoing stern question before a magistrate, and probably incurring
  • fine or imprisonment, or perhaps an exhibition in the stocks. As
  • regarded the shipmaster, however, all was looked upon as pertaining to
  • the character, as to a fish his glistening scales.
  • After parting from the physician, the commander of the Bristol ship
  • strolled idly through the market-place; until, happening to approach
  • the spot where Hester Prynne was standing, he appeared to recognize,
  • and did not hesitate to address her. As was usually the case wherever
  • Hester stood, a small vacant area—a sort of magic circle—had formed
  • itself about her, into which, though the people were elbowing one
  • another at a little distance, none ventured, or felt disposed to
  • intrude. It was a forcible type of the moral solitude in which the
  • scarlet letter enveloped its fated wearer; partly by her own reserve,
  • and partly by the instinctive, though no longer so unkindly,
  • withdrawal of her fellow-creatures. Now, if never before, it answered
  • a good purpose, by enabling Hester and the seaman to speak together
  • without risk of being overheard; and so changed was Hester Prynne's
  • repute before the public, that the matron in town most eminent for
  • rigid morality could not have held such intercourse with less result
  • of scandal than herself.
  • “So, mistress,” said the mariner, “I must bid the steward make ready
  • one more berth than you bargained for! No fear of scurvy or
  • ship-fever, this voyage! What with the ship's surgeon and this other
  • doctor, our only danger will be from drug or pill; more by token, as
  • there is a lot of apothecary's stuff aboard, which I traded for with a
  • Spanish vessel.”
  • “What mean you?” inquired Hester, startled more than she permitted to
  • appear. “Have you another passenger?”
  • “Why, know you not,” cried the shipmaster, “that this physician
  • here—Chillingworth, he calls himself—is minded to try my cabin-fare
  • with you? Ay, ay, you must have known it; for he tells me he is of
  • your party, and a close friend to the gentleman you spoke of,—he that
  • is in peril from these sour old Puritan rulers!”
  • [Illustration: Chillingworth,—“Smile with a sinister meaning”]
  • “They know each other well, indeed,” replied Hester, with a mien of
  • calmness, though in the utmost consternation. “They have long dwelt
  • together.”
  • Nothing further passed between the mariner and Hester Prynne. But, at
  • that instant, she beheld old Roger Chillingworth himself, standing in
  • the remotest corner of the market-place, and smiling on her; a smile
  • which—across the wide and bustling square, and through all the talk
  • and laughter, and various thoughts, moods, and interests of the
  • crowd—conveyed secret and fearful meaning.
  • [Illustration]
  • XXII.
  • THE PROCESSION.
  • Before Hester Prynne could call together her thoughts, and consider
  • what was practicable to be done in this new and startling aspect of
  • affairs, the sound of military music was heard approaching along a
  • contiguous street. It denoted the advance of the procession of
  • magistrates and citizens, on its way towards the meeting-house; where,
  • in compliance with a custom thus early established, and ever since
  • observed, the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale was to deliver an Election
  • Sermon.
  • [Illustration: New England Worthies]
  • Soon the head of the procession showed itself, with a slow and stately
  • march, turning a corner, and making its way across the market-place.
  • First came the music. It comprised a variety of instruments, perhaps
  • imperfectly adapted to one another, and played with no great skill;
  • but yet attaining the great object for which the harmony of drum and
  • clarion addresses itself to the multitude,—that of imparting a higher
  • and more heroic air to the scene of life that passes before the eye.
  • Little Pearl at first clapped her hands, but then lost, for an
  • instant, the restless agitation that had kept her in a continual
  • effervescence throughout the morning; she gazed silently, and seemed
  • to be borne upward, like a floating sea-bird, on the long heaves and
  • swells of sound. But she was brought back to her former mood by the
  • shimmer of the sunshine on the weapons and bright armor of the
  • military company, which followed after the music, and formed the
  • honorary escort of the procession. This body of soldiery—which still
  • sustains a corporate existence, and marches down from past ages with
  • an ancient and honorable fame—was composed of no mercenary materials.
  • Its ranks were filled with gentlemen, who felt the stirrings of
  • martial impulse, and sought to establish a kind of College of Arms,
  • where, as in an association of Knights Templars, they might learn the
  • science, and, so far as peaceful exercise would teach them, the
  • practices of war. The high estimation then placed upon the military
  • character might be seen in the lofty port of each individual member
  • of the company. Some of them, indeed, by their services in the Low
  • Countries and on other fields of European warfare, had fairly won
  • their title to assume the name and pomp of soldiership. The entire
  • array, moreover, clad in burnished steel, and with plumage nodding
  • over their bright morions, had a brilliancy of effect which no modern
  • display can aspire to equal.
  • And yet the men of civil eminence, who came immediately behind the
  • military escort, were better worth a thoughtful observer's eye. Even
  • in outward demeanor, they showed a stamp of majesty that made the
  • warrior's haughty stride look vulgar, if not absurd. It was an age
  • when what we call talent had far less consideration than now, but the
  • massive materials which produce stability and dignity of character a
  • great deal more. The people possessed, by hereditary right, the
  • quality of reverence; which, in their descendants, if it survive at
  • all, exists in smaller proportion, and with a vastly diminished force,
  • in the selection and estimate of public men. The change may be for
  • good or ill, and is partly, perhaps, for both. In that old day, the
  • English settler on these rude shores—having left king, nobles, and
  • all degrees of awful rank behind, while still the faculty and
  • necessity of reverence were strong in him—bestowed it on the white
  • hair and venerable brow of age; on long-tried integrity; on solid
  • wisdom and sad-colored experience; on endowments of that grave and
  • weighty order which gives the idea of permanence, and comes under the
  • general definition of respectability. These primitive statesmen,
  • therefore,—Bradstreet, Endicott, Dudley, Bellingham, and their
  • compeers,—who were elevated to power by the early choice of the
  • people, seem to have been not often brilliant, but distinguished by a
  • ponderous sobriety, rather than activity of intellect. They had
  • fortitude and self-reliance, and, in time of difficulty or peril,
  • stood up for the welfare of the state like a line of cliffs against a
  • tempestuous tide. The traits of character here indicated were well
  • represented in the square cast of countenance and large physical
  • development of the new colonial magistrates. So far as a demeanor of
  • natural authority was concerned, the mother country need not have been
  • ashamed to see these foremost men of an actual democracy adopted into
  • the House of Peers, or made the Privy Council of the sovereign.
  • Next in order to the magistrates came the young and eminently
  • distinguished divine, from whose lips the religious discourse of the
  • anniversary was expected. His was the profession, at that era, in
  • which intellectual ability displayed itself far more than in political
  • life; for—leaving a higher motive out of the question—it offered
  • inducements powerful enough, in the almost worshipping respect of the
  • community, to win the most aspiring ambition into its service. Even
  • political power—as in the case of Increase Mather—was within the
  • grasp of a successful priest.
  • It was the observation of those who beheld him now, that never, since
  • Mr. Dimmesdale first set his foot on the New England shore, had he
  • exhibited such energy as was seen in the gait and air with which he
  • kept his pace in the procession. There was no feebleness of step, as
  • at other times; his frame was not bent; nor did his hand rest
  • ominously upon his heart. Yet, if the clergyman were rightly viewed,
  • his strength seemed not of the body. It might be spiritual, and
  • imparted to him by angelic ministrations. It might be the exhilaration
  • of that potent cordial, which is distilled only in the furnace-glow of
  • earnest and long-continued thought. Or, perchance, his sensitive
  • temperament was invigorated by the loud and piercing music, that
  • swelled heavenward, and uplifted him on its ascending wave.
  • Nevertheless, so abstracted was his look, it might be questioned
  • whether Mr. Dimmesdale even heard the music. There was his body,
  • moving onward, and with an unaccustomed force. But where was his mind?
  • Far and deep in its own region, busying itself, with preternatural
  • activity, to marshal a procession of stately thoughts that were soon
  • to issue thence; and so he saw nothing, heard nothing, knew nothing,
  • of what was around him; but the spiritual element took up the feeble
  • frame, and carried it along, unconscious of the burden, and converting
  • it to spirit like itself. Men of uncommon intellect, who have grown
  • morbid, possess this occasional power of mighty effort, into which
  • they throw the life of many days, and then are lifeless for as many
  • more.
  • Hester Prynne, gazing steadfastly at the clergyman, felt a dreary
  • influence come over her, but wherefore or whence she knew not; unless
  • that he seemed so remote from her own sphere, and utterly beyond her
  • reach. One glance of recognition, she had imagined, must needs pass
  • between them. She thought of the dim forest, with its little dell of
  • solitude, and love, and anguish, and the mossy tree-trunk, where,
  • sitting hand in hand, they had mingled their sad and passionate talk
  • with the melancholy murmur of the brook. How deeply had they known
  • each other then! And was this the man? She hardly knew him now! He,
  • moving proudly past, enveloped, as it were, in the rich music, with
  • the procession of majestic and venerable fathers; he, so unattainable
  • in his worldly position, and still more so in that far vista of his
  • unsympathizing thoughts, through which she now beheld him! Her spirit
  • sank with the idea that all must have been a delusion, and that,
  • vividly as she had dreamed it, there could be no real bond betwixt the
  • clergyman and herself. And thus much of woman was there in Hester,
  • that she could scarcely forgive him,—least of all now, when the heavy
  • footstep of their approaching Fate might be heard, nearer, nearer,
  • nearer!—for being able so completely to withdraw himself from their
  • mutual world; while she groped darkly, and stretched forth her cold
  • hands, and found him not.
  • Pearl either saw and responded to her mother's feelings, or herself
  • felt the remoteness and intangibility that had fallen around the
  • minister. While the procession passed, the child was uneasy,
  • fluttering up and down, like a bird on the point of taking flight.
  • When the whole had gone by, she looked up into Hester's face.
  • “Mother,” said she, “was that the same minister that kissed me by the
  • brook?”
  • “Hold thy peace, dear little Pearl!” whispered her mother. “We must
  • not always talk in the market-place of what happens to us in the
  • forest.”
  • “I could not be sure that it was he; so strange he looked,” continued
  • the child. “Else I would have run to him, and bid him kiss me now,
  • before all the people; even as he did yonder among the dark old trees.
  • What would the minister have said, mother? Would he have clapped his
  • hand over his heart, and scowled on me, and bid me be gone?”
  • “What should he say, Pearl,” answered Hester, “save that it was no
  • time to kiss, and that kisses are not to be given in the market-place?
  • Well for thee, foolish child, that thou didst not speak to him!”
  • Another shade of the same sentiment, in reference to Mr. Dimmesdale,
  • was expressed by a person whose eccentricities—or insanity, as we
  • should term it—led her to do what few of the towns-people would have
  • ventured on; to begin a conversation with the wearer of the scarlet
  • letter, in public. It was Mistress Hibbins, who, arrayed in great
  • magnificence, with a triple ruff, a broidered stomacher, a gown of
  • rich velvet, and a gold-headed cane, had come forth to see the
  • procession. As this ancient lady had the renown (which subsequently
  • cost her no less a price than her life) of being a principal actor in
  • all the works of necromancy that were continually going forward, the
  • crowd gave way before her, and seemed to fear the touch of her
  • garment, as if it carried the plague among its gorgeous folds. Seen in
  • conjunction with Hester Prynne,—kindly as so many now felt towards
  • the latter,—the dread inspired by Mistress Hibbins was doubled, and
  • caused a general movement from that part of the market-place in which
  • the two women stood.
  • “Now, what mortal imagination could conceive it!” whispered the old
  • lady, confidentially, to Hester. “Yonder divine man! That saint on
  • earth, as the people uphold him to be, and as—I must needs say—he
  • really looks! Who, now, that saw him pass in the procession, would
  • think how little while it is since he went forth out of his
  • study,—chewing a Hebrew text of Scripture in his mouth, I
  • warrant,—to take an airing in the forest! Aha! we know what that
  • means, Hester Prynne! But, truly, forsooth, I find it hard to believe
  • him the same man. Many a church-member saw I, walking behind the
  • music, that has danced in the same measure with me, when Somebody was
  • fiddler, and, it might be, an Indian powwow or a Lapland wizard
  • changing hands with us! That is but a trifle, when a woman knows the
  • world. But this minister! Couldst thou surely tell, Hester, whether he
  • was the same man that encountered thee on the forest-path?”
  • “Madam, I know not of what you speak,” answered Hester Prynne, feeling
  • Mistress Hibbins to be of infirm mind; yet strangely startled and
  • awe-stricken by the confidence with which she affirmed a personal
  • connection between so many persons (herself among them) and the Evil
  • One. “It is not for me to talk lightly of a learned and pious minister
  • of the Word, like the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale!”
  • “Fie, woman, fie!” cried the old lady, shaking her finger at Hester.
  • “Dost thou think I have been to the forest so many times, and have yet
  • no skill to judge who else has been there? Yea; though no leaf of the
  • wild garlands, which they wore while they danced, be left in their
  • hair! I know thee, Hester; for I behold the token. We may all see it
  • in the sunshine; and it glows like a red flame in the dark. Thou
  • wearest it openly; so there need be no question about that. But this
  • minister! Let me tell thee, in thine ear! When the Black Man sees one
  • of his own servants, signed and sealed, so shy of owning to the bond
  • as is the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale, he hath a way of ordering matters
  • so that the mark shall be disclosed in open daylight to the eyes of
  • all the world! What is it that the minister seeks to hide, with his
  • hand always over his heart? Ha, Hester Prynne!”
  • “What is it, good Mistress Hibbins?” eagerly asked little Pearl. “Hast
  • thou seen it?”
  • “No matter, darling!” responded Mistress Hibbins, making Pearl a
  • profound reverence. “Thou thyself wilt see it, one time or another.
  • They say, child, thou art of the lineage of the Prince of the Air!
  • Wilt thou ride with me, some fine night, to see thy father? Then thou
  • shalt know wherefore the minister keeps his hand over his heart!”
  • Laughing so shrilly that all the market-place could hear her, the
  • weird old gentlewoman took her departure.
  • By this time the preliminary prayer had been offered in the
  • meeting-house, and the accents of the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale were
  • heard commencing his discourse. An irresistible feeling kept Hester
  • near the spot. As the sacred edifice was too much thronged to admit
  • another auditor, she took up her position close beside the scaffold of
  • the pillory. It was in sufficient proximity to bring the whole sermon
  • to her ears, in the shape of an indistinct, but varied, murmur and
  • flow of the minister's very peculiar voice.
  • This vocal organ was in itself a rich endowment; insomuch that a
  • listener, comprehending nothing of the language in which the preacher
  • spoke, might still have been swayed to and fro by the mere tone and
  • cadence. Like all other music, it breathed passion and pathos, and
  • emotions high or tender, in a tongue native to the human heart,
  • wherever educated. Muffled as the sound was by its passage through the
  • church-walls, Hester Prynne listened with such intentness, and
  • sympathized so intimately, that the sermon had throughout a meaning
  • for her, entirely apart from its indistinguishable words. These,
  • perhaps, if more distinctly heard, might have been only a grosser
  • medium, and have clogged the spiritual sense. Now she caught the low
  • undertone, as of the wind sinking down to repose itself; then ascended
  • with it, as it rose through progressive gradations of sweetness and
  • power, until its volume seemed to envelop her with an atmosphere of
  • awe and solemn grandeur. And yet, majestic as the voice sometimes
  • became, there was forever in it an essential character of
  • plaintiveness. A loud or low expression of anguish,—the whisper, or
  • the shriek, as it might be conceived, of suffering humanity, that
  • touched a sensibility in every bosom! At times this deep strain of
  • pathos was all that could be heard, and scarcely heard, sighing amid a
  • desolate silence. But even when the minister's voice grew high and
  • commanding,—when it gushed irrepressibly upward,—when it assumed its
  • utmost breadth and power, so overfilling the church as to burst its
  • way through the solid walls, and diffuse itself in the open
  • air,—still, if the auditor listened intently, and for the purpose, he
  • could detect the same cry of pain. What was it? The complaint of a
  • human heart, sorrow-laden, perchance guilty, telling its secret,
  • whether of guilt or sorrow, to the great heart of mankind; beseeching
  • its sympathy or forgiveness,—at every moment,—in each accent,—and
  • never in vain! It was this profound and continual undertone that gave
  • the clergyman his most appropriate power.
  • During all this time, Hester stood, statue-like, at the foot of the
  • scaffold. If the minister's voice had not kept her there, there would
  • nevertheless have been an inevitable magnetism in that spot, whence
  • she dated the first hour of her life of ignominy. There was a sense
  • within her,—too ill-defined to be made a thought, but weighing
  • heavily on her mind,—that her whole orb of life, both before and
  • after, was connected with this spot, as with the one point that gave
  • it unity.
  • Little Pearl, meanwhile, had quitted her mother's side, and was
  • playing at her own will about the market-place. She made the sombre
  • crowd cheerful by her erratic and glistening ray; even as a bird of
  • bright plumage illuminates a whole tree of dusky foliage, by darting
  • to and fro, half seen and half concealed amid the twilight of the
  • clustering leaves. She had an undulating, but, oftentimes, a sharp and
  • irregular movement. It indicated the restless vivacity of her spirit,
  • which to-day was doubly indefatigable in its tiptoe dance, because it
  • was played upon and vibrated with her mother's disquietude. Whenever
  • Pearl saw anything to excite her ever-active and wandering curiosity,
  • she flew thitherward and, as we might say, seized upon that man or
  • thing as her own property, so far as she desired it; but without
  • yielding the minutest degree of control over her motions in requital.
  • The Puritans looked on, and, if they smiled, were none the less
  • inclined to pronounce the child a demon offspring, from the
  • indescribable charm of beauty and eccentricity that shone through her
  • little figure, and sparkled with its activity. She ran and looked the
  • wild Indian in the face; and he grew conscious of a nature wilder than
  • his own. Thence, with native audacity, but still with a reserve as
  • characteristic, she flew into the midst of a group of mariners, the
  • swarthy-cheeked wild men of the ocean, as the Indians were of the
  • land; and they gazed wonderingly and admiringly at Pearl, as if a
  • flake of the sea-foam had taken the shape of a little maid, and were
  • gifted with a soul of the sea-fire, that flashes beneath the prow in
  • the night-time.
  • One of these seafaring men—the shipmaster, indeed, who had spoken to
  • Hester Prynne—was so smitten with Pearl's aspect, that he attempted
  • to lay hands upon her, with purpose to snatch a kiss. Finding it as
  • impossible to touch her as to catch a humming-bird in the air, he took
  • from his hat the gold chain that was twisted about it, and threw it to
  • the child. Pearl immediately twined it around her neck and waist,
  • with such happy skill, that, once seen there, it became a part of her,
  • and it was difficult to imagine her without it.
  • “Thy mother is yonder woman with the scarlet letter,” said the seaman.
  • “Wilt thou carry her a message from me?”
  • “If the message pleases me, I will,” answered Pearl.
  • “Then tell her,” rejoined he, “that I spake again with the
  • black-a-visaged, hump-shouldered old doctor, and he engages to bring
  • his friend, the gentleman she wots of, aboard with him. So let thy
  • mother take no thought, save for herself and thee. Wilt thou tell her
  • this, thou witch-baby?”
  • “Mistress Hibbins says my father is the Prince of the Air!” cried
  • Pearl, with a naughty smile. “If thou callest me that ill name, I
  • shall tell him of thee; and he will chase thy ship with a tempest!”
  • Pursuing a zigzag course across the market-place, the child returned
  • to her mother, and communicated what the mariner had said. Hester's
  • strong, calm, steadfastly enduring spirit almost sank, at last, on
  • beholding this dark and grim countenance of an inevitable doom,
  • which—at the moment when a passage seemed to open for the minister
  • and herself out of their labyrinth of misery—showed itself, with an
  • unrelenting smile, right in the midst of their path.
  • With her mind harassed by the terrible perplexity in which the
  • shipmaster's intelligence involved her, she was also subjected to
  • another trial. There were many people present, from the country round
  • about, who had often heard of the scarlet letter, and to whom it had
  • been made terrific by a hundred false or exaggerated rumors, but who
  • had never beheld it with their own bodily eyes. These, after
  • exhausting other modes of amusement, now thronged about Hester Prynne
  • with rude and boorish intrusiveness. Unscrupulous as it was, however,
  • it could not bring them nearer than a circuit of several yards. At
  • that distance they accordingly stood, fixed there by the centrifugal
  • force of the repugnance which the mystic symbol inspired. The whole
  • gang of sailors, likewise, observing the press of spectators, and
  • learning the purport of the scarlet letter, came and thrust their
  • sunburnt and desperado-looking faces into the ring. Even the Indians
  • were affected by a sort of cold shadow of the white man's curiosity,
  • and, gliding through the crowd, fastened their snake-like black eyes
  • on Hester's bosom; conceiving, perhaps, that the wearer of this
  • brilliantly embroidered badge must needs be a personage of high
  • dignity among her people. Lastly the inhabitants of the town (their
  • own interest in this worn-out subject languidly reviving itself, by
  • sympathy with what they saw others feel) lounged idly to the same
  • quarter, and tormented Hester Prynne, perhaps more than all the rest,
  • with their cool, well-acquainted gaze at her familiar shame. Hester
  • saw and recognized the selfsame faces of that group of matrons, who
  • had awaited her forthcoming from the prison-door, seven years ago; all
  • save one, the youngest and only compassionate among them, whose
  • burial-robe she had since made. At the final hour, when she was so
  • soon to fling aside the burning letter, it had strangely become the
  • centre of more remark and excitement, and was thus made to sear her
  • breast more painfully, than at any time since the first day she put it
  • on.
  • While Hester stood in that magic circle of ignominy, where the cunning
  • cruelty of her sentence seemed to have fixed her forever, the
  • admirable preacher was looking down from the sacred pulpit upon an
  • audience whose very inmost spirits had yielded to his control. The
  • sainted minister in the church! The woman of the scarlet letter in the
  • market-place! What imagination would have been irreverent enough to
  • surmise that the same scorching stigma was on them both!
  • [Illustration]
  • [Illustration]
  • XXIII.
  • THE REVELATION OF THE SCARLET LETTER.
  • The eloquent voice, on which the souls of the listening audience had
  • been borne aloft as on the swelling waves of the sea, at length came
  • to a pause. There was a momentary silence, profound as what should
  • follow the utterance of oracles. Then ensued a murmur and half-hushed
  • tumult; as if the auditors, released from the high spell that had
  • transported them into the region of another's mind, were returning
  • into themselves, with all their awe and wonder still heavy on them. In
  • a moment more, the crowd began to gush forth from the doors of the
  • church. Now that there was an end, they needed other breath, more fit
  • to support the gross and earthly life into which they relapsed, than
  • that atmosphere which the preacher had converted into words of flame,
  • and had burdened with the rich fragrance of his thought.
  • In the open air their rapture broke into speech. The street and the
  • market-place absolutely babbled, from side to side, with applauses of
  • the minister. His hearers could not rest until they had told one
  • another of what each knew better than he could tell or hear. According
  • to their united testimony, never had man spoken in so wise, so high,
  • and so holy a spirit, as he that spake this day; nor had inspiration
  • ever breathed through mortal lips more evidently than it did through
  • his. Its influence could be seen, as it were, descending upon him, and
  • possessing him, and continually lifting him out of the written
  • discourse that lay before him, and filling him with ideas that must
  • have been as marvellous to himself as to his audience. His subject, it
  • appeared, had been the relation between the Deity and the communities
  • of mankind, with a special reference to the New England which they
  • were here planting in the wilderness. And, as he drew towards the
  • close, a spirit as of prophecy had come upon him, constraining him to
  • its purpose as mightily as the old prophets of Israel were
  • constrained; only with this difference, that, whereas the Jewish seers
  • had denounced judgments and ruin on their country, it was his mission
  • to foretell a high and glorious destiny for the newly gathered people
  • of the Lord. But, throughout it all, and through the whole discourse,
  • there had been a certain deep, sad undertone of pathos, which could
  • not be interpreted otherwise than as the natural regret of one soon to
  • pass away. Yes; their minister whom they so loved—and who so loved
  • them all, that he could not depart heavenward without a sigh—had the
  • foreboding of untimely death upon him, and would soon leave them in
  • their tears! This idea of his transitory stay on earth gave the last
  • emphasis to the effect which the preacher had produced; it was as if
  • an angel, in his passage to the skies, had shaken his bright wings
  • over the people for an instant,—at once a shadow and a
  • splendor,—and had shed down a shower of golden truths upon them.
  • Thus, there had come to the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale—as to most men,
  • in their various spheres, though seldom recognized until they see it
  • far behind them—an epoch of life more brilliant and full of triumph
  • than any previous one, or than any which could hereafter be. He stood,
  • at this moment, on the very proudest eminence of superiority, to which
  • the gifts of intellect, rich lore, prevailing eloquence, and a
  • reputation of whitest sanctity, could exalt a clergyman in New
  • England's earliest days, when the professional character was of itself
  • a lofty pedestal. Such was the position which the minister occupied,
  • as he bowed his head forward on the cushions of the pulpit, at the
  • close of his Election Sermon. Meanwhile Hester Prynne was standing
  • beside the scaffold of the pillory, with the scarlet letter still
  • burning on her breast!
  • Now was heard again the clangor of the music, and the measured tramp
  • of the military escort, issuing from the church-door. The procession
  • was to be marshalled thence to the town-hall, where a solemn banquet
  • would complete the ceremonies of the day.
  • Once more, therefore, the train of venerable and majestic fathers was
  • seen moving through a broad pathway of the people, who drew back
  • reverently, on either side, as the Governor and magistrates, the old
  • and wise men, the holy ministers, and all that were eminent and
  • renowned, advanced into the midst of them. When they were fairly in
  • the market-place, their presence was greeted by a shout. This—though
  • doubtless it might acquire additional force and volume from the
  • childlike loyalty which the age awarded to its rulers—was felt to be
  • an irrepressible outburst of enthusiasm kindled in the auditors by
  • that high strain of eloquence which was yet reverberating in their
  • ears. Each felt the impulse in himself, and, in the same breath,
  • caught it from his neighbor. Within the church, it had hardly been
  • kept down; beneath the sky, it pealed upward to the zenith. There were
  • human beings enough, and enough of highly wrought and symphonious
  • feeling, to produce that more impressive sound than the organ tones of
  • the blast, or the thunder, or the roar of the sea; even that mighty
  • swell of many voices, blended into one great voice by the universal
  • impulse which makes likewise one vast heart out of the many. Never,
  • from the soil of New England, had gone up such a shout! Never, on New
  • England soil, had stood the man so honored by his mortal brethren as
  • the preacher!
  • How fared it with him then? Were there not the brilliant particles of
  • a halo in the air about his head? So etherealized by spirit as he was,
  • and so apotheosized by worshipping admirers, did his footsteps, in the
  • procession, really tread upon the dust of earth?
  • As the ranks of military men and civil fathers moved onward, all eyes
  • were turned towards the point where the minister was seen to approach
  • among them. The shout died into a murmur, as one portion of the crowd
  • after another obtained a glimpse of him. How feeble and pale he
  • looked, amid all his triumph! The energy—or say, rather, the
  • inspiration which had held him up, until he should have delivered the
  • sacred message that brought its own strength along with it from
  • heaven—was withdrawn, now that it had so faithfully performed its
  • office. The glow, which they had just before beheld burning on his
  • cheek, was extinguished, like a flame that sinks down hopelessly
  • among the late-decaying embers. It seemed hardly the face of a man
  • alive, with such a death-like hue; it was hardly a man with life in
  • him, that tottered on his path so nervelessly, yet tottered, and did
  • not fall!
  • One of his clerical brethren,—it was the venerable John
  • Wilson,—observing the state in which Mr. Dimmesdale was left by the
  • retiring wave of intellect and sensibility, stepped forward hastily to
  • offer his support. The minister tremulously, but decidedly, repelled
  • the old man's arm. He still walked onward, if that movement could be
  • so described, which rather resembled the wavering effort of an infant,
  • with its mother's arms in view, outstretched to tempt him forward. And
  • now, almost imperceptible as were the latter steps of his progress, he
  • had come opposite the well-remembered and weather-darkened scaffold,
  • where, long since, with all that dreary lapse of time between, Hester
  • Prynne had encountered the world's ignominious stare. There stood
  • Hester, holding little Pearl by the hand! And there was the scarlet
  • letter on her breast! The minister here made a pause; although the
  • music still played the stately and rejoicing march to which the
  • procession moved. It summoned him onward,—onward to the
  • festival!—but here he made a pause.
  • Bellingham, for the last few moments, had kept an anxious eye upon
  • him. He now left his own place in the procession, and advanced to give
  • assistance; judging, from Mr. Dimmesdale's aspect, that he must
  • otherwise inevitably fall. But there was something in the latter's
  • expression that warned back the magistrate, although a man not readily
  • obeying the vague intimations that pass from one spirit to another.
  • The crowd, meanwhile, looked on with awe and wonder. This earthly
  • faintness was, in their view, only another phase of the minister's
  • celestial strength; nor would it have seemed a miracle too high to be
  • wrought for one so holy, had he ascended before their eyes, waxing
  • dimmer and brighter, and fading at last into the light of heaven.
  • He turned towards the scaffold, and stretched forth his arms.
  • “Hester,” said he, “come hither! Come, my little Pearl!”
  • It was a ghastly look with which he regarded them; but there was
  • something at once tender and strangely triumphant in it. The child,
  • with the bird-like motion which was one of her characteristics, flew
  • to him, and clasped her arms about his knees. Hester Prynne—slowly,
  • as if impelled by inevitable fate, and against her strongest
  • will—likewise drew near, but paused before she reached him. At this
  • instant, old Roger Chillingworth thrust himself through the
  • crowd,—or, perhaps, so dark, disturbed, and evil, was his look, he
  • rose up out of some nether region,—to snatch back his victim from
  • what he sought to do! Be that as it might, the old man rushed forward,
  • and caught the minister by the arm.
  • “Madman, hold! what is your purpose?” whispered he. “Wave back that
  • woman! Cast off this child! All shall be well! Do not blacken your
  • fame, and perish in dishonor! I can yet save you! Would you bring
  • infamy on your sacred profession?”
  • “Ha, tempter! Methinks thou art too late!” answered the minister,
  • encountering his eye, fearfully, but firmly. “Thy power is not what it
  • was! With God's help, I shall escape thee now!”
  • He again extended his hand to the woman of the scarlet letter.
  • “Hester Prynne,” cried he, with a piercing earnestness, “in the name
  • of Him, so terrible and so merciful, who gives me grace, at this last
  • moment, to do what—for my own heavy sin and miserable agony—I
  • withheld myself from doing seven years ago, come hither now, and twine
  • thy strength about me! Thy strength, Hester; but let it be guided by
  • the will which God hath granted me! This wretched and wronged old man
  • is opposing it with all his might!—with all his own might, and the
  • fiend's! Come, Hester, come! Support me up yonder scaffold!”
  • The crowd was in a tumult. The men of rank and dignity, who stood more
  • immediately around the clergyman, were so taken by surprise, and so
  • perplexed as to the purport of what they saw,—unable to receive the
  • explanation which most readily presented itself, or to imagine any
  • other,—that they remained silent and inactive spectators of the
  • judgment which Providence seemed about to work. They beheld the
  • minister, leaning on Hester's shoulder, and supported by her arm
  • around him, approach the scaffold, and ascend its steps; while still
  • the little hand of the sin-born child was clasped in his. Old Roger
  • Chillingworth followed, as one intimately connected with the drama of
  • guilt and sorrow in which they had all been actors, and well entitled,
  • therefore, to be present at its closing scene.
  • “Hadst thou sought the whole earth over,” said he, looking darkly at
  • the clergyman, “there was no one place so secret,—no high place nor
  • lowly place, where thou couldst have escaped me,—save on this very
  • scaffold!”
  • “Thanks be to Him who hath led me hither!” answered the minister.
  • Yet he trembled, and turned to Hester with an expression of doubt and
  • anxiety in his eyes, not the less evidently betrayed, that there was a
  • feeble smile upon his lips.
  • “Is not this better,” murmured he, “than what we dreamed of in the
  • forest?”
  • “I know not! I know not!” she hurriedly replied. “Better? Yea; so we
  • may both die, and little Pearl die with us!”
  • “For thee and Pearl, be it as God shall order,” said the minister;
  • “and God is merciful! Let me now do the will which he hath made plain
  • before my sight. For, Hester, I am a dying man. So let me make haste
  • to take my shame upon me!”
  • Partly supported by Hester Prynne, and holding one hand of little
  • Pearl's, the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale turned to the dignified and
  • venerable rulers; to the holy ministers, who were his brethren; to the
  • people, whose great heart was thoroughly appalled, yet overflowing
  • with tearful sympathy, as knowing that some deep life-matter—which,
  • if full of sin, was full of anguish and repentance likewise—was now
  • to be laid open to them. The sun, but little past its meridian, shone
  • down upon the clergyman, and gave a distinctness to his figure, as he
  • stood out from all the earth, to put in his plea of guilty at the bar
  • of Eternal Justice.
  • “People of New England!” cried he, with a voice that rose over them,
  • high, solemn, and majestic,—yet had always a tremor through it, and
  • sometimes a shriek, struggling up out of a fathomless depth of remorse
  • and woe,—“ye, that have loved me!—ye, that have deemed me
  • holy!—behold me here, the one sinner of the world! At last!—at
  • last!—I stand upon the spot where, seven years since, I should have
  • stood; here, with this woman, whose arm, more than the little strength
  • wherewith I have crept hitherward, sustains me, at this dreadful
  • moment, from grovelling down upon my face! Lo, the scarlet letter
  • which Hester wears! Ye have all shuddered at it! Wherever her walk
  • hath been,—wherever, so miserably burdened, she may have hoped to
  • find repose,—it hath cast a lurid gleam of awe and horrible
  • repugnance round about her. But there stood one in the midst of you,
  • at whose brand of sin and infamy ye have not shuddered!”
  • It seemed, at this point, as if the minister must leave the remainder
  • of his secret undisclosed. But he fought back the bodily
  • weakness,—and, still more, the faintness of heart,—that was striving
  • for the mastery with him. He threw off all assistance, and stepped
  • passionately forward a pace before the woman and the child.
  • “It was on him!” he continued, with a kind of fierceness; so
  • determined was he to speak out the whole. “God's eye beheld it! The
  • angels were forever pointing at it! The Devil knew it well, and
  • fretted it continually with the touch of his burning finger! But he
  • hid it cunningly from men, and walked among you with the mien of a
  • spirit, mournful, because so pure in a sinful world!—and sad, because
  • he missed his heavenly kindred! Now, at the death-hour, he stands up
  • before you! He bids you look again at Hester's scarlet letter! He
  • tells you, that, with all its mysterious horror, it is but the shadow
  • of what he bears on his own breast, and that even this, his own red
  • stigma, is no more than the type of what has seared his inmost heart!
  • Stand any here that question God's judgment on a sinner? Behold!
  • Behold a dreadful witness of it!”
  • [Illustration: “Shall we not meet again?”]
  • With a convulsive motion, he tore away the ministerial band from
  • before his breast. It was revealed! But it were irreverent to describe
  • that revelation. For an instant, the gaze of the horror-stricken
  • multitude was concentred on the ghastly miracle; while the minister
  • stood, with a flush of triumph in his face, as one who, in the
  • crisis of acutest pain, had won a victory. Then, down he sank upon the
  • scaffold! Hester partly raised him, and supported his head against her
  • bosom. Old Roger Chillingworth knelt down beside him, with a blank,
  • dull countenance, out of which the life seemed to have departed.
  • “Thou hast escaped me!” he repeated more than once. “Thou hast escaped
  • me!”
  • “May God forgive thee!” said the minister. “Thou, too, hast deeply
  • sinned!”
  • He withdrew his dying eyes from the old man, and fixed them on the
  • woman and the child.
  • “My little Pearl,” said he, feebly,—and there was a sweet and gentle
  • smile over his face, as of a spirit sinking into deep repose; nay, now
  • that the burden was removed, it seemed almost as if he would be
  • sportive with the child,—“dear little Pearl, wilt thou kiss me now?
  • Thou wouldst not, yonder, in the forest! But now thou wilt?”
  • Pearl kissed his lips. A spell was broken. The great scene of grief,
  • in which the wild infant bore a part, had developed all her
  • sympathies; and as her tears fell upon her father's cheek, they were
  • the pledge that she would grow up amid human joy and sorrow, nor
  • forever do battle with the world, but be a woman in it. Towards her
  • mother, too, Pearl's errand as a messenger of anguish was all
  • fulfilled.
  • “Hester,” said the clergyman, “farewell!”
  • “Shall we not meet again?” whispered she, bending her face down close
  • to his. “Shall we not spend our immortal life together? Surely,
  • surely, we have ransomed one another, with all this woe! Thou lookest
  • far into eternity, with those bright dying eyes! Then tell me what
  • thou seest?”
  • “Hush, Hester, hush!” said he, with tremulous solemnity. “The law we
  • broke!—the sin here so awfully revealed!—let these alone be in thy
  • thoughts! I fear! I fear! It may be, that, when we forgot our
  • God,—when we violated our reverence each for the other's soul,—it
  • was thenceforth vain to hope that we could meet hereafter, in an
  • everlasting and pure reunion. God knows; and He is merciful! He hath
  • proved his mercy, most of all, in my afflictions. By giving me this
  • burning torture to bear upon my breast! By sending yonder dark and
  • terrible old man, to keep the torture always at red-heat! By bringing
  • me hither, to die this death of triumphant ignominy before the people!
  • Had either of these agonies been wanting, I had been lost forever!
  • Praised be his name! His will be done! Farewell!”
  • That final word came forth with the minister's expiring breath. The
  • multitude, silent till then, broke out in a strange, deep voice of awe
  • and wonder, which could not as yet find utterance, save in this murmur
  • that rolled so heavily after the departed spirit.
  • [Illustration]
  • [Illustration]
  • XXIV.
  • CONCLUSION.
  • After many days, when time sufficed for the people to arrange their
  • thoughts in reference to the foregoing scene, there was more than one
  • account of what had been witnessed on the scaffold.
  • Most of the spectators testified to having seen, on the breast of the
  • unhappy minister, a SCARLET LETTER—the very semblance of that worn by
  • Hester Prynne—imprinted in the flesh. As regarded its origin, there
  • were various explanations, all of which must necessarily have been
  • conjectural. Some affirmed that the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale, on the
  • very day when Hester Prynne first wore her ignominious badge, had
  • begun a course of penance,—which he afterwards, in so many futile
  • methods, followed out,—by inflicting a hideous torture on himself.
  • Others contended that the stigma had not been produced until a long
  • time subsequent, when old Roger Chillingworth, being a potent
  • necromancer, had caused it to appear, through the agency of magic and
  • poisonous drugs. Others, again,—and those best able to appreciate
  • the minister's peculiar sensibility, and the wonderful operation of
  • his spirit upon the body,—whispered their belief, that the awful
  • symbol was the effect of the ever-active tooth of remorse, gnawing
  • from the inmost heart outwardly, and at last manifesting Heaven's
  • dreadful judgment by the visible presence of the letter. The reader
  • may choose among these theories. We have thrown all the light we could
  • acquire upon the portent, and would gladly, now that it has done its
  • office, erase its deep print out of our own brain; where long
  • meditation has fixed it in very undesirable distinctness.
  • It is singular, nevertheless, that certain persons, who were
  • spectators of the whole scene, and professed never once to have
  • removed their eyes from the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale, denied that there
  • was any mark whatever on his breast, more than on a new-born infant's.
  • Neither, by their report, had his dying words acknowledged, nor even
  • remotely implied, any, the slightest connection, on his part, with the
  • guilt for which Hester Prynne had so long worn the scarlet letter.
  • According to these highly respectable witnesses, the minister,
  • conscious that he was dying,—conscious, also, that the reverence of
  • the multitude placed him already among saints and angels,—had
  • desired, by yielding up his breath in the arms of that fallen woman,
  • to express to the world how utterly nugatory is the choicest of man's
  • own righteousness. After exhausting life in his efforts for mankind's
  • spiritual good, he had made the manner of his death a parable, in
  • order to impress on his admirers the mighty and mournful lesson, that,
  • in the view of Infinite Purity, we are sinners all alike. It was to
  • teach them, that the holiest among us has but attained so far above
  • his fellows as to discern more clearly the Mercy which looks down,
  • and repudiate more utterly the phantom of human merit, which would
  • look aspiringly upward. Without disputing a truth so momentous, we
  • must be allowed to consider this version of Mr. Dimmesdale's story as
  • only an instance of that stubborn fidelity with which a man's
  • friends—and especially a clergyman's—will sometimes uphold his
  • character, when proofs, clear as the mid-day sunshine on the scarlet
  • letter, establish him a false and sin-stained creature of the dust.
  • The authority which we have chiefly followed,—a manuscript of old
  • date, drawn up from the verbal testimony of individuals, some of whom
  • had known Hester Prynne, while others had heard the tale from
  • contemporary witnesses,—fully confirms the view taken in the
  • foregoing pages. Among many morals which press upon us from the poor
  • minister's miserable experience, we put only this into a
  • sentence:—“Be true! Be true! Be true! Show freely to the world, if
  • not your worst, yet some trait whereby the worst may be inferred!”
  • Nothing was more remarkable than the change which took place, almost
  • immediately after Mr. Dimmesdale's death, in the appearance and
  • demeanor of the old man known as Roger Chillingworth. All his strength
  • and energy—all his vital and intellectual force—seemed at once to
  • desert him; insomuch that he positively withered up, shrivelled away,
  • and almost vanished from mortal sight, like an uprooted weed that lies
  • wilting in the sun. This unhappy man had made the very principle of
  • his life to consist in the pursuit and systematic exercise of revenge;
  • and when, by its completest triumph and consummation, that evil
  • principle was left with no further material to support it, when, in
  • short, there was no more Devil's work on earth for him to do, it only
  • remained for the unhumanized mortal to betake himself whither his
  • Master would find him tasks enough, and pay him his wages duly. But,
  • to all these shadowy beings, so long our near acquaintances,—as well
  • Roger Chillingworth as his companions,—we would fain be merciful. It
  • is a curious subject of observation and inquiry, whether hatred and
  • love be not the same thing at bottom. Each, in its utmost development,
  • supposes a high degree of intimacy and heart-knowledge; each renders
  • one individual dependent for the food of his affections and spiritual
  • life upon another; each leaves the passionate lover, or the no less
  • passionate hater, forlorn and desolate by the withdrawal of his
  • subject. Philosophically considered, therefore, the two passions seem
  • essentially the same, except that one happens to be seen in a
  • celestial radiance, and the other in a dusky and lurid glow. In the
  • spiritual world, the old physician and the minister—mutual victims as
  • they have been—may, unawares, have found their earthly stock of
  • hatred and antipathy transmuted into golden love.
  • Leaving this discussion apart, we have a matter of business to
  • communicate to the reader. At old Roger Chillingworth's decease,
  • (which took place within the year,) and by his last will and
  • testament, of which Governor Bellingham and the Reverend Mr. Wilson
  • were executors, he bequeathed a very considerable amount of property,
  • both here and in England, to little Pearl, the daughter of Hester
  • Prynne.
  • So Pearl—the elf-child,—the demon offspring, as some people, up to
  • that epoch, persisted in considering her,—became the richest heiress
  • of her day, in the New World. Not improbably, this circumstance
  • wrought a very material change in the public estimation; and, had the
  • mother and child remained here, little Pearl, at a marriageable period
  • of life, might have mingled her wild blood with the lineage of the
  • devoutest Puritan among them all. But, in no long time after the
  • physician's death, the wearer of the scarlet letter disappeared, and
  • Pearl along with her. For many years, though a vague report would now
  • and then find its way across the sea,—like a shapeless piece of
  • drift-wood tost ashore, with the initials of a name upon it,—yet no
  • tidings of them unquestionably authentic were received. The story of
  • the scarlet letter grew into a legend. Its spell, however, was still
  • potent, and kept the scaffold awful where the poor minister had died,
  • and likewise the cottage by the sea-shore, where Hester Prynne had
  • dwelt. Near this latter spot, one afternoon, some children were at
  • play, when they beheld a tall woman, in a gray robe, approach the
  • cottage-door. In all those years it had never once been opened; but
  • either she unlocked it, or the decaying wood and iron yielded to her
  • hand, or she glided shadow-like through these impediments,—and, at
  • all events, went in.
  • On the threshold she paused,—turned partly round,—for, perchance,
  • the idea of entering all alone, and all so changed, the home of so
  • intense a former life, was more dreary and desolate than even she
  • could bear. But her hesitation was only for an instant, though long
  • enough to display a scarlet letter on her breast.
  • [Illustration: Hester's Return]
  • And Hester Prynne had returned, and taken up her long-forsaken shame!
  • But where was little Pearl? If still alive, she must now have been in
  • the flush and bloom of early womanhood. None knew—nor ever learned,
  • with the fulness of perfect certainty—whether the elf-child had gone
  • thus untimely to a maiden grave; or whether her wild, rich nature had
  • been softened and subdued, and made capable of a woman's gentle
  • happiness. But, through the remainder of Hester's life, there were
  • indications that the recluse of the scarlet letter was the object of
  • love and interest with some inhabitant of another land. Letters came,
  • with armorial seals upon them, though of bearings unknown to English
  • heraldry. In the cottage there were articles of comfort and luxury
  • such as Hester never cared to use, but which only wealth could have
  • purchased, and affection have imagined for her. There were trifles,
  • too, little ornaments, beautiful tokens of a continual remembrance,
  • that must have been wrought by delicate fingers, at the impulse of a
  • fond heart. And, once, Hester was seen embroidering a baby-garment,
  • with such a lavish richness of golden fancy as would have raised a
  • public tumult, had any infant, thus apparelled, been shown to our
  • sober-hued community.
  • In fine, the gossips of that day believed,—and Mr. Surveyor Pue, who
  • made investigations a century later, believed,—and one of his recent
  • successors in office, moreover, faithfully believes,—that Pearl was
  • not only alive, but married, and happy, and mindful of her mother, and
  • that she would most joyfully have entertained that sad and lonely
  • mother at her fireside.
  • But there was a more real life for Hester Prynne here, in New England,
  • than in that unknown region where Pearl had found a home. Here had
  • been her sin; here, her sorrow; and here was yet to be her penitence.
  • She had returned, therefore, and resumed,—of her own free will, for
  • not the sternest magistrate of that iron period would have imposed
  • it,—resumed the symbol of which we have related so dark a tale. Never
  • afterwards did it quit her bosom. But, in the lapse of the toilsome,
  • thoughtful, and self-devoted years that made up Hester's life, the
  • scarlet letter ceased to be a stigma which attracted the world's scorn
  • and bitterness, and became a type of something to be sorrowed over,
  • and looked upon with awe, yet with reverence too. And, as Hester
  • Prynne had no selfish ends, nor lived in any measure for her own
  • profit and enjoyment, people brought all their sorrows and
  • perplexities, and besought her counsel, as one who had herself gone
  • through a mighty trouble. Women, more especially,—in the continually
  • recurring trials of wounded, wasted, wronged, misplaced, or erring and
  • sinful passion,—or with the dreary burden of a heart unyielded,
  • because unvalued and unsought,—came to Hester's cottage, demanding
  • why they were so wretched, and what the remedy! Hester comforted and
  • counselled them as best she might. She assured them, too, of her firm
  • belief, that, at some brighter period, when the world should have
  • grown ripe for it, in Heaven's own time, a new truth would be
  • revealed, in order to establish the whole relation between man and
  • woman on a surer ground of mutual happiness. Earlier in life, Hester
  • had vainly imagined that she herself might be the destined prophetess,
  • but had long since recognized the impossibility that any mission of
  • divine and mysterious truth should be confided to a woman stained with
  • sin, bowed down with shame, or even burdened with a life-long sorrow.
  • The angel and apostle of the coming revelation must be a woman,
  • indeed, but lofty, pure, and beautiful; and wise, moreover, not
  • through dusky grief, but the ethereal medium of joy; and showing how
  • sacred love should make us happy, by the truest test of a life
  • successful to such an end!
  • So said Hester Prynne, and glanced her sad eyes downward at the
  • scarlet letter. And, after many, many years, a new grave was delved,
  • near an old and sunken one, in that burial-ground beside which King's
  • Chapel has since been built. It was near that old and sunken grave,
  • yet with a space between, as if the dust of the two sleepers had no
  • right to mingle. Yet one tombstone served for both. All around, there
  • were monuments carved with armorial bearings; and on this simple slab
  • of slate—as the curious investigator may still discern, and perplex
  • himself with the purport—there appeared the semblance of an engraved
  • escutcheon. It bore a device, a herald's wording of which might serve
  • for a motto and brief description of our now concluded legend; so
  • sombre is it, and relieved only by one ever-glowing point of light
  • gloomier than the shadow:—
  • “ON A FIELD, SABLE, THE LETTER A, GULES.”
  • [Illustration]
  • Cambridge: Electrotyped and Printed by Welch, Bigelow, & Co.
  • TRANSCRIBER'S NOTES
  • Obvious printer's errors have been corrected; for the details, see
  • below. Most illustrations have been linked to the larger versions; to
  • see the larger version, click on the illustration.
  • Typos fixed:
  • page 072—spelling normalized: changed 'midday' to 'mid-day'
  • page 132—inserted a missing closing quote after 'a child of her age'
  • page 137—spelling normalized: changed 'careworn' to 'care-worn'
  • page 147—typo fixed: changed 'physican' to 'physician'
  • page 171—typo fixed: changed 'vocies' to 'voices'
  • page 262—removed an extra closing quote after 'scarlet letter too!'
  • page 291—spelling normalized: changed 'birdlike' to 'bird-like'
  • page 300—typo fixed: changed 'intruments' to 'instruments'
  • page 306—spelling normalized: changed 'deathlike' to 'death-like'
  • End of Project Gutenberg's The Scarlet Letter, by Nathaniel Hawthorne
  • *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE SCARLET LETTER ***
  • ***** This file should be named 25344-0.txt or 25344-0.zip *****
  • This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org/2/5/3/4/25344/
  • Produced by Markus Brenner, Irma Spehar and the Online
  • Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
  • file was produced from images generously made available
  • by The Internet Archive/American Libraries.)
  • Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
  • will be renamed.
  • Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
  • one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
  • (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
  • permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
  • set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
  • copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
  • protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
  • Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
  • charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
  • do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
  • rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
  • such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
  • research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
  • practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
  • subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
  • redistribution.
  • *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
  • THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
  • PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
  • To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
  • distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
  • (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
  • http://gutenberg.net/license).
  • Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic works
  • 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
  • and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
  • (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
  • the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
  • all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
  • If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
  • terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
  • entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
  • 1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
  • used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
  • agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
  • things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
  • even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
  • paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
  • and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works. See paragraph 1.E below.
  • 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
  • or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
  • collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
  • individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
  • located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
  • copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
  • works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
  • are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
  • freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
  • this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
  • the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
  • keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
  • 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
  • what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
  • a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
  • the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
  • before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
  • creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
  • Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
  • the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
  • States.
  • 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
  • 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
  • access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
  • whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
  • phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
  • copied or distributed:
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
  • 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
  • from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
  • posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
  • and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
  • or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
  • with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
  • work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
  • through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
  • Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
  • 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
  • with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
  • must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
  • terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
  • to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
  • permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
  • 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
  • work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
  • 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
  • electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
  • prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
  • active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License.
  • 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
  • compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
  • word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
  • distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
  • "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
  • posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.net),
  • you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
  • copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
  • request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
  • form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
  • 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
  • performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
  • unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
  • access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
  • that
  • - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
  • the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
  • you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
  • owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
  • has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
  • Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
  • must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
  • prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
  • returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
  • sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
  • address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
  • the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
  • - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
  • you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
  • does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License. You must require such a user to return or
  • destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
  • and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
  • Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
  • money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
  • electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
  • of receipt of the work.
  • - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
  • distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
  • forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
  • both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
  • Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
  • Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
  • 1.F.
  • 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
  • effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
  • public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
  • "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
  • corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
  • property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
  • computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
  • your equipment.
  • 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
  • of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
  • liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
  • fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
  • LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
  • PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
  • TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
  • LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
  • INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
  • DAMAGE.
  • 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
  • defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
  • receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
  • written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
  • received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
  • your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
  • the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
  • refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
  • providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
  • receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
  • is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
  • opportunities to fix the problem.
  • 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
  • in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
  • WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
  • WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
  • 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
  • warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
  • If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
  • law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
  • interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
  • the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
  • provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
  • 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
  • trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
  • providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
  • with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
  • promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
  • harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
  • that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
  • or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
  • work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
  • Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
  • Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
  • Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
  • electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
  • including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
  • because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
  • people in all walks of life.
  • Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
  • assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
  • goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
  • remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
  • and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
  • To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
  • and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
  • and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
  • Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  • Foundation
  • The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
  • 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
  • state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
  • Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
  • number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
  • http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
  • permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
  • The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
  • Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
  • throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
  • 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
  • business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
  • information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
  • page at http://pglaf.org
  • For additional contact information:
  • Dr. Gregory B. Newby
  • Chief Executive and Director
  • gbnewby@pglaf.org
  • Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation
  • Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
  • spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
  • increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
  • freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
  • array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
  • ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
  • status with the IRS.
  • The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
  • charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
  • States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
  • considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
  • with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
  • where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
  • SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
  • particular state visit http://pglaf.org
  • While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
  • have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
  • against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
  • approach us with offers to donate.
  • International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
  • any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
  • outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
  • Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
  • methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
  • ways including including checks, online payments and credit card
  • donations. To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
  • Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works.
  • Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
  • with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
  • Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
  • Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
  • editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
  • unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
  • keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
  • Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
  • http://www.gutenberg.net
  • This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
  • including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
  • Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
  • subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.